collapse all  

Text -- 1 Corinthians 7:6-40 (NET)

Strongs On/Off
Context
7:6 I say this as a concession, not as a command. 7:7 I wish that everyone was as I am. But each has his own gift from God, one this way, another that. 7:8 To the unmarried and widows I say that it is best for them to remain as I am. 7:9 But if they do not have self-control, let them get married. For it is better to marry than to burn with sexual desire. 7:10 To the married I give this command– not I, but the Lord– a wife should not divorce a husband 7:11 (but if she does, let her remain unmarried, or be reconciled to her husband), and a husband should not divorce his wife. 7:12 To the rest I say– I, not the Lord– if a brother has a wife who is not a believer and she is happy to live with him, he should not divorce her. 7:13 And if a woman has a husband who is not a believer and he is happy to live with her, she should not divorce him. 7:14 For the unbelieving husband is sanctified because of the wife, and the unbelieving wife because of her husband. Otherwise your children are unclean, but now they are holy. 7:15 But if the unbeliever wants a divorce, let it take place. In these circumstances the brother or sister is not bound. God has called you in peace. 7:16 For how do you know, wife, whether you will bring your husband to salvation? Or how do you know, husband, whether you will bring your wife to salvation?
The Circumstances of Your Calling
7:17 Nevertheless, as the Lord has assigned to each one, as God has called each person, so must he live. I give this sort of direction in all the churches. 7:18 Was anyone called after he had been circumcised? He should not try to undo his circumcision. Was anyone called who is uncircumcised? He should not get circumcised. 7:19 Circumcision is nothing and uncircumcision is nothing. Instead, keeping God’s commandments is what counts. 7:20 Let each one remain in that situation in life in which he was called. 7:21 Were you called as a slave? Do not worry about it. But if indeed you are able to be free, make the most of the opportunity. 7:22 For the one who was called in the Lord as a slave is the Lord’s freedman. In the same way, the one who was called as a free person is Christ’s slave. 7:23 You were bought with a price. Do not become slaves of men. 7:24 In whatever situation someone was called, brothers and sisters, let him remain in it with God.
Remaining Unmarried
7:25 With regard to the question about people who have never married, I have no command from the Lord, but I give my opinion as one shown mercy by the Lord to be trustworthy. 7:26 Because of the impending crisis I think it best for you to remain as you are. 7:27 The one bound to a wife should not seek divorce. The one released from a wife should not seek marriage. 7:28 But if you marry, you have not sinned. And if a virgin marries, she has not sinned. But those who marry will face difficult circumstances, and I am trying to spare you such problems. 7:29 And I say this, brothers and sisters: The time is short. So then those who have wives should be as those who have none, 7:30 those with tears like those not weeping, those who rejoice like those not rejoicing, those who buy like those without possessions, 7:31 those who use the world as though they were not using it to the full. For the present shape of this world is passing away. 7:32 And I want you to be free from concern. An unmarried man is concerned about the things of the Lord, how to please the Lord. 7:33 But a married man is concerned about the things of the world, how to please his wife, 7:34 and he is divided. An unmarried woman or a virgin is concerned about the things of the Lord, to be holy both in body and spirit. But a married woman is concerned about the things of the world, how to please her husband. 7:35 I am saying this for your benefit, not to place a limitation on you, but so that without distraction you may give notable and constant service to the Lord. 7:36 If anyone thinks he is acting inappropriately toward his virgin, if she is past the bloom of youth and it seems necessary, he should do what he wishes; he does not sin. Let them marry. 7:37 But the man who is firm in his commitment, and is under no necessity but has control over his will, and has decided in his own mind to keep his own virgin, does well. 7:38 So then, the one who marries his own virgin does well, but the one who does not, does better. 7:39 A wife is bound as long as her husband is living. But if her husband dies, she is free to marry anyone she wishes (only someone in the Lord). 7:40 But in my opinion, she will be happier if she remains as she is– and I think that I too have the Spirit of God!
Parallel   Cross Reference (TSK)   ITL  
Table of Contents

Word/Phrase Notes
Robertson , Vincent , Wesley , JFB , Clarke , Calvin , Defender , TSK

Word/Phrase Notes
Barnes , Poole , Haydock , Gill

Verse Notes / Footnotes
NET Notes , Geneva Bible

Verse Range Notes
TSK Synopsis , Maclaren , MHCC , Matthew Henry , Barclay , Constable , College , McGarvey , Lapide

Other
Critics Ask , Evidence

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per phrase)

Robertson: 1Co 7:6 - -- By way of permission ( kata sungnōmēn ). Old word for pardon, concession, indulgence. Secundum indulgentiam (Vulgate). Only here in N.T., thou...

By way of permission ( kata sungnōmēn ).

Old word for pardon, concession, indulgence. Secundum indulgentiam (Vulgate). Only here in N.T., though in the papyri for pardon. The word means "knowing together,"understanding, agreement, and so concession.

Robertson: 1Co 7:6 - -- Not of commandment ( ou kat' epitagēn ). Late word (in papyri) from epitassō , old word to enjoin. Paul has not commanded people to marry. He has...

Not of commandment ( ou kat' epitagēn ).

Late word (in papyri) from epitassō , old word to enjoin. Paul has not commanded people to marry. He has left it an open question.

Robertson: 1Co 7:7 - -- Yet I would ( thelō de ). "But I wish."Followed by accusative and infinitive (anthrōpous einai ). This is Paul’ s personal preference under...

Yet I would ( thelō de ).

"But I wish."Followed by accusative and infinitive (anthrōpous einai ). This is Paul’ s personal preference under present conditions (1Co 7:26).

Robertson: 1Co 7:7 - -- Even as I myself ( hōs kai emauton ). This clearly means that Paul was not then married and it is confirmed by 1Co 9:5. Whether he had been married...

Even as I myself ( hōs kai emauton ).

This clearly means that Paul was not then married and it is confirmed by 1Co 9:5. Whether he had been married and was now a widower turns on the interpretation of Act 26:10 "I cast my vote."If this is taken literally (the obvious way to take it) as a member of the Sanhedrin, Paul was married at that time. There is no way to decide.

Robertson: 1Co 7:7 - -- His own gift from God ( idion charisma ek theou ). So each must decide for himself. See note on 1Co 1:7 for charisma , a late word from charizomai .

His own gift from God ( idion charisma ek theou ).

So each must decide for himself. See note on 1Co 1:7 for charisma , a late word from charizomai .

Robertson: 1Co 7:8 - -- To the unmarried and to the widows ( tois agamois kai tais chērais ). It is possible that by "the unmarried"(masculine plural) the apostle means on...

To the unmarried and to the widows ( tois agamois kai tais chērais ).

It is possible that by "the unmarried"(masculine plural) the apostle means only men since widows are added and since virgins receive special treatment later (1Co 7:25) and in 1Co 7:32 ho agamos is the unmarried man. It is hardly likely that Paul means only widowers and widows and means to call himself a widower by hōs kagō (even as I). After discussing marital relations in 1Co 7:2-7 he returns to the original question in 1Co 7:1 and repeats his own personal preference as in 1Co 7:7. He does not say that it is better to be unmarried, but only that it is good (kalon as in 1Co 7:1) for them to remain unmarried. Agamos is an old word and in N.T. occurs only in this passage. In 1Co 7:11, 1Co 7:34 it is used of women where the old Greeks would have used anandros , without a husband.

Robertson: 1Co 7:9 - -- But if they have not continency ( ei de ouk egkrateuontai ). Condition of the first class, assumed as true. Direct middle voice egkrateuontai , hold ...

But if they have not continency ( ei de ouk egkrateuontai ).

Condition of the first class, assumed as true. Direct middle voice egkrateuontai , hold themselves in, control themselves.

Robertson: 1Co 7:9 - -- Let them marry ( gamēsatōsan ). First aorist (ingressive) active imperative. Usual Koiné[28928]š form in ̇tōsan for third plural.

Let them marry ( gamēsatōsan ).

First aorist (ingressive) active imperative. Usual Koiné[28928]š form in ̇tōsan for third plural.

Robertson: 1Co 7:9 - -- Better ( kreitton ). Marriage is better than continued sexual passion. Paul has not said that celibacy is better than marriage though he has justif...

Better ( kreitton ).

Marriage is better than continued sexual passion. Paul has not said that celibacy is better than marriage though he has justified it and expressed his own personal preference for it. The metaphorical use of purousthai (present middle infinitive) for sexual passion is common enough as also for grief (2Co 11:29).

Robertson: 1Co 7:10 - -- To the married ( tois gegamēkosin ). Perfect active participle of gameō , old verb, to marry, and still married as the tense shows.

To the married ( tois gegamēkosin ).

Perfect active participle of gameō , old verb, to marry, and still married as the tense shows.

Robertson: 1Co 7:10 - -- I give charge ( paraggellō ). Not mere wish as in 1Co 7:7, 1Co 7:8.

I give charge ( paraggellō ).

Not mere wish as in 1Co 7:7, 1Co 7:8.

Robertson: 1Co 7:10 - -- Not I, but the Lord ( ouk egō alla ho kurios ). Paul had no commands from Jesus to the unmarried (men or women), but Jesus had spoken to the marrie...

Not I, but the Lord ( ouk egō alla ho kurios ).

Paul had no commands from Jesus to the unmarried (men or women), but Jesus had spoken to the married (husbands and wives) as in Mat 5:31.; Mat 19:3-12; Mar 10:9-12; Luk 16:18. The Master had spoken plain words about divorce. Paul reenforces his own inspired command by the command of Jesus. In Mar 10:9 we have from Christ: "What therefore God joined together let not man put asunder"(mē chorizetō ).

Robertson: 1Co 7:10 - -- That the wife depart not from her husband ( gunaika apo andros mē choristhēnai ). First aorist passive infinitive (indirect command after paragge...

That the wife depart not from her husband ( gunaika apo andros mē choristhēnai ).

First aorist passive infinitive (indirect command after paraggellō ) of chorizō , old verb from adverbial preposition chōris , separately, apart from, from. Here used of divorce by the wife which, though unusual then, yet did happen as in the case of Salome (sister of Herod the Great) and of Herodias before she married Herod Antipas. Jesus also spoke of it (Mar 10:12). Now most of the divorces are obtained by women. This passive infinitive is almost reflexive in force according to a constant tendency in the Koiné[28928]š (Robertson, Grammar , p. 817).||

Robertson: 1Co 7:11 - -- But and if she depart ( ean de kai chōristhēi ). Third class condition, undetermined. If, in spite of Christ’ s clear prohibition, she get s...

But and if she depart ( ean de kai chōristhēi ).

Third class condition, undetermined. If, in spite of Christ’ s clear prohibition, she get separated (ingressive passive subjunctive), let her remain unmarried (menetō agamos ). Paul here makes no allowance for remarriage of the innocent party as Jesus does by implication.

Robertson: 1Co 7:11 - -- Or else be reconciled to her husband ( ē tōi andri katallagētō ). Second aorist (ingressive) passive imperative of katallassō , old compoun...

Or else be reconciled to her husband ( ē tōi andri katallagētō ).

Second aorist (ingressive) passive imperative of katallassō , old compound verb to exchange coins as of equal value, to reconcile. One of Paul’ s great words for reconciliation with God (2Co 5:18-20; Rom 5:10). Diallassō (Mat 5:24 which see) was more common in the older Greek, but katallassō in the later. The difference in idea is very slight, diȧ accents notion of exchange, kaṫ the perfective idea (complete reconciliation). Dative of personal interest is the case of andri . This sentence is a parenthesis between the two infinitives chōristhēnai and aphienai (both indirect commands after paraggellō ).

Robertson: 1Co 7:11 - -- And that the husband leave not his wife ( kai andra mē aphienai ). This is also part of the Lord’ s command (Mar 10:11). Apoluō occurs in ...

And that the husband leave not his wife ( kai andra mē aphienai ).

This is also part of the Lord’ s command (Mar 10:11). Apoluō occurs in Mark of the husband’ s act and aphienai here, both meaning to send away. Bengel actually stresses the difference between chōristhēnai of the woman as like separatur in Latin and calls the wife "pars ignobilior"and the husband "nobilior."I doubt if Paul would stand for that extreme.

Robertson: 1Co 7:12 - -- But to the rest say I, not the Lord ( tois de loipois legō egō ,ouch ho Kurios ). Paul has no word about marriage from Jesus beyond the problem ...

But to the rest say I, not the Lord ( tois de loipois legō egō ,ouch ho Kurios ).

Paul has no word about marriage from Jesus beyond the problem of divorce. This is no disclaimer of inspiration. He simply means that here he is not quoting a command of Jesus.

Robertson: 1Co 7:12 - -- An unbelieving wife ( gunaika apiston ). This is a new problem, the result of work among the Gentiles, that did not arise in the time of Jesus. The f...

An unbelieving wife ( gunaika apiston ).

This is a new problem, the result of work among the Gentiles, that did not arise in the time of Jesus. The form apiston is the same as the masculine because a compound adjective. Paul has to deal with mixed marriages as missionaries do today in heathen lands. The rest (hoi loipoi ) for Gentiles (Eph 2:3) we have already had in 1Th 4:13; 1Th 5:6 which see. The Christian husband married his wife when he himself was an unbeliever. The word apistos sometimes means unfaithful (Luk 12:46), but not here (cf. Joh 20:27).

Robertson: 1Co 7:12 - -- She is content ( suneudokei ). Late compound verb to be pleased together with, agree together. In the papyri.

She is content ( suneudokei ).

Late compound verb to be pleased together with, agree together. In the papyri.

Robertson: 1Co 7:12 - -- Let him not leave her ( mē aphietō autēn ). Perhaps here and in 1Co 7:11, 1Co 7:13 aphiēmi should be translated "put away"like apoluō i...

Let him not leave her ( mē aphietō autēn ).

Perhaps here and in 1Co 7:11, 1Co 7:13 aphiēmi should be translated "put away"like apoluō in Mar 10:1. Some understand aphiēmi as separation from bed and board, not divorce.

Robertson: 1Co 7:13 - -- Which hath an unbelieving husband ( hētis echei andra apiston ). Relative clause here, while a conditional one in 1Co 7:12 (ei tis , if any one). P...

Which hath an unbelieving husband ( hētis echei andra apiston ).

Relative clause here, while a conditional one in 1Co 7:12 (ei tis , if any one). Paul is perfectly fair in stating both sides of the problem of mixed marriages.

Robertson: 1Co 7:14 - -- Is sanctified in the wife ( hēgiastai en tēi gunaiki ). Perfect passive indicative of hagiazō , to set apart, to hallow, to sanctify. Paul does...

Is sanctified in the wife ( hēgiastai en tēi gunaiki ).

Perfect passive indicative of hagiazō , to set apart, to hallow, to sanctify. Paul does not, of course, mean that the unbelieving husband is saved by the faith of the believing wife, though Hodge actually so interprets him. Clearly he only means that the marriage relation is sanctified so that there is no need of a divorce. If either husband or wife is a believer and the other agrees to remain, the marriage is holy and need not be set aside. This is so simple that one wonders at the ability of men to get confused over Paul’ s language.

Robertson: 1Co 7:14 - -- Else were your children unclean ( epei ara ta tekna akatharta ). The common ellipse of the condition with epei : "since, accordingly, if it is other...

Else were your children unclean ( epei ara ta tekna akatharta ).

The common ellipse of the condition with epei : "since, accordingly, if it is otherwise, your children are illegitimate (akatharta )."If the relations of the parents be holy, the child’ s birth must be holy also (not illegitimate). "He is not assuming that the child of a Christian parent would be baptized; that would spoil rather than help his argument, for it would imply that the child was not hagios till it was baptized. The verse throws no light on the question of infant baptism"(Robertson and Plummer).

Robertson: 1Co 7:15 - -- Is not under bondage ( ou dedoulōtai ). Perfect passive indicative of douloō , to enslave, has been enslaved, does not remain a slave. The believ...

Is not under bondage ( ou dedoulōtai ).

Perfect passive indicative of douloō , to enslave, has been enslaved, does not remain a slave. The believing husband or wife is not at liberty to separate, unless the disbeliever or pagan insists on it. Wilful desertion of the unbeliever sets the other free, a case not contemplated in Christ’ s words in Mat 5:32; Mat 19:9. Luther argued that the Christian partner, thus released, may marry again. But that is by no means clear, unless the unbeliever marries first.

Robertson: 1Co 7:15 - -- But God hath called us in peace ( en de eirēnēi keklēken hēmas or humas ). Perfect active indicative of kaleō , permanent call in the sph...

But God hath called us in peace ( en de eirēnēi keklēken hēmas or humas ).

Perfect active indicative of kaleō , permanent call in the sphere or atmosphere of peace. He does not desire enslavement in the marriage relation between the believer and the unbeliever.

Robertson: 1Co 7:16 - -- For how knowest thou? ( ti gar oidas̱ ). But what does Paul mean? Is he giving an argument against the believer accepting divorce or in favour o...

For how knowest thou? ( ti gar oidas̱ ).

But what does Paul mean? Is he giving an argument against the believer accepting divorce or in favour of doing so? The syntax allows either interpretation with ei (if) after oidas . Is the idea in ei (if) hope of saving the other or fear of not saving and hence peril in continuing the slavery of such a bondage? The latter idea probably suits the context best and is adopted by most commentators. And yet one hesitates to interpret Paul as advocating divorce unless strongly insisted on by the unbeliever. There is no problem at all unless the unbeliever makes it. If it is a hopeless case, acquiescence is the only wise solution. But surely the believer ought to be sure that there is no hope before he agrees to break the bond. Paul raises the problem of the wife first as in 1Co 7:10.

Robertson: 1Co 7:17 - -- Only ( ei mē ). This use of ei mē as an elliptical condition is very common (1Co 7:5; Gal 1:7, Gal 1:19; Rom 14:14), "except that"like plēn ....

Only ( ei mē ).

This use of ei mē as an elliptical condition is very common (1Co 7:5; Gal 1:7, Gal 1:19; Rom 14:14), "except that"like plēn . Paul gives a general principle as a limitation to what he has just said in 1Co 7:15. "It states the general principle which determines these questions about marriage, and this is afterwards illustrated by the cases of circumcision and slavery"(Robertson and Plummer). He has said that there is to be no compulsory slavery between the believer and the disbeliever (the Christian and the pagan). But on the other hand there is to be no reckless abuse of this liberty, no license.

Robertson: 1Co 7:17 - -- As the Lord hath distributed to each man ( hekastōi hōs memeriken ho kurios ). Perfect active indicative of merizō , old verb from meros , apar...

As the Lord hath distributed to each man ( hekastōi hōs memeriken ho kurios ).

Perfect active indicative of merizō , old verb from meros , apart. Each has his lot from the Lord Jesus, has his call from God. He is not to seek a rupture of the marriage relation if the unbeliever does not ask for it.

Robertson: 1Co 7:17 - -- And so ordain I ( kai houtōs diatassomai ). Military term, old word, to arrange in all the churches (distributed, diȧ ). Paul is conscious of au...

And so ordain I ( kai houtōs diatassomai ).

Military term, old word, to arrange in all the churches (distributed, diȧ ). Paul is conscious of authoritative leadership as the apostle of Christ to the Gentiles.

Robertson: 1Co 7:18 - -- Let him not become uncircumcized ( mē epispasthō ). Present middle imperative of epispaō , old verb to draw on. In lxx (1 Maccabees 1:15) and J...

Let him not become uncircumcized ( mē epispasthō ).

Present middle imperative of epispaō , old verb to draw on. In lxx (1 Maccabees 1:15) and Josephus ( Ant. XII, V. I) in this sense. Here only in N.T. The point is that a Jew is to remain a Jew, a Gentile to be a Gentile. Both stand on an equality in the Christian churches. This freedom about circumcision illustrates the freedom about Gentile mixed marriages.

Robertson: 1Co 7:19 - -- But the keeping of the commandments of God ( alla tērēsis entolōn theou ). Old word in sense of watching (Act 4:3). Paul’ s view of the wo...

But the keeping of the commandments of God ( alla tērēsis entolōn theou ).

Old word in sense of watching (Act 4:3). Paul’ s view of the worthlessness of circumcision or of uncircumcision is stated again in Gal 5:6; Gal 6:15; Rom 2:25-29 (only the inward or spiritual Jew counts).

Robertson: 1Co 7:20 - -- Wherein he was called ( hēi eklēthē ). When he was called by God and saved, whether a Jew or a Gentile, a slave or a freeman.

Wherein he was called ( hēi eklēthē ).

When he was called by God and saved, whether a Jew or a Gentile, a slave or a freeman.

Robertson: 1Co 7:21 - -- Wast thou called being a bondservant? ( doulos eklēthēs̱ ). First aorist passive indicative. Wast thou, a slave, called?

Wast thou called being a bondservant? ( doulos eklēthēs̱ ).

First aorist passive indicative. Wast thou, a slave, called?

Robertson: 1Co 7:21 - -- Care not for it ( mē soi meletō ). "Let it not be a care to thee."Third person singular (impersonal) of melei , old verb with dative soi . It was...

Care not for it ( mē soi meletō ).

"Let it not be a care to thee."Third person singular (impersonal) of melei , old verb with dative soi . It was usually a fixed condition and a slave could be a good servant of Christ (Col 3:22; Eph 6:5; Tit 2:9), even with heathen masters.

Robertson: 1Co 7:21 - -- Use it rather ( mallon chrēsai ). Make use of what? There is no "it"in the Greek. Shall we supply eleutheriāi (instrumental case after chrēsa...

Use it rather ( mallon chrēsai ).

Make use of what? There is no "it"in the Greek. Shall we supply eleutheriāi (instrumental case after chrēsai or douleiāi )? Most naturally eleutheriāi , freedom, from eleutheros , just before. In that case ei kai is not taken as although, but kai goes with dunasai , "But if thou canst also become free, the rather use your opportunity for freedom."On the whole this is probably Paul’ s idea and is in full harmony with the general principle above about mixed marriages with the heathen. Chrēsai is second person singular aorist middle imperative of chraomai , to use, old and common verb.

Robertson: 1Co 7:22 - -- The Lord’ s freedman ( apeleutheros Kuriou ). Apeleutheros is an old word for a manumitted slave, eleutheros from erchomai , to go and so go...

The Lord’ s freedman ( apeleutheros Kuriou ).

Apeleutheros is an old word for a manumitted slave, eleutheros from erchomai , to go and so go free, aṗ from bondage. Christ is now the owner of the Christian and Paul rejoices to call himself Christ’ s slave (doulos ). But Christ set us free from sin by paying the ransom (lutron ) of his life on the Cross (Mat 20:28; Rom 8:2; Gal 5:1). Christ is thus the patronus of the libertus who owes everything to his patronus . He is no longer the slave of sin (Rom 6:6, Rom 6:18), but a slave to God (Rom 6:22).

Robertson: 1Co 7:22 - -- Likewise the freeman when called is Christ’ s slave ( homoiōs ho eleutheros klētheis doulos estin Christou ). Those who were not slaves, but...

Likewise the freeman when called is Christ’ s slave ( homoiōs ho eleutheros klētheis doulos estin Christou ).

Those who were not slaves, but freemen, when converted, are as much slaves of Christ as those who were and still were slaves of men. All were slaves of sin and have been set free from sin by Christ who now owns them all.

Robertson: 1Co 7:23 - -- Ye were bought with a price ( timēs ēgorasthēte ). See note on 1Co 6:20 for this very phrase, here repeated. Both classes (slaves and freemen) ...

Ye were bought with a price ( timēs ēgorasthēte ).

See note on 1Co 6:20 for this very phrase, here repeated. Both classes (slaves and freemen) were purchased by the blood of Christ.

Robertson: 1Co 7:23 - -- Become not bondservants of men ( mē ginesthe douloi anthrōpōn ). Present middle imperative of ginomai with negative mē . Literally, stop be...

Become not bondservants of men ( mē ginesthe douloi anthrōpōn ).

Present middle imperative of ginomai with negative mē . Literally, stop becoming slaves of men. Paul here clearly defines his opposition to human slavery as an institution which comes out so powerfully in the Epistle to Philemon. Those already free from human slavery should not become enslaved.

Robertson: 1Co 7:24 - -- With God ( para theōi ). There is comfort in that. Even a slave can have God at his side by remaining at God’ s side.

With God ( para theōi ).

There is comfort in that. Even a slave can have God at his side by remaining at God’ s side.

Robertson: 1Co 7:25 - -- I have no commandment of the Lord ( epitagēn Kuriou ouk echō ). A late word from epitassō , old Greek verb to enjoin, to give orders to. Paul d...

I have no commandment of the Lord ( epitagēn Kuriou ouk echō ).

A late word from epitassō , old Greek verb to enjoin, to give orders to. Paul did have (1Co 7:10) a command from the Lord as we have in Matthew and Mark. It was quite possible for Paul to know this command of Jesus as he did other sayings of Jesus (Act 20:35) even if he had as yet no access to a written gospel or had received no direct revelation on the subject from Jesus (1Co 11:23). Sayings of Jesus were passed on among the believers. But Paul had no specific word from Jesus on the subject of virgins. They call for special treatment, young unmarried women only Paul means (1Co 7:25, 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:34, 1Co 7:36-38) and not as in Rev 14:4 (metaphor). It is probable that in the letter (1Co 7:1) the Corinthians had asked about this problem.

Robertson: 1Co 7:25 - -- But I give my judgment ( gnōmēn de didōmi ). About mixed marriages (1Co 7:12) Paul had the command of Jesus concerning divorce to guide him. He...

But I give my judgment ( gnōmēn de didōmi ).

About mixed marriages (1Co 7:12) Paul had the command of Jesus concerning divorce to guide him. Here he has nothing from Jesus at all. So he gives no "command,"but only "a judgment,"a deliberately formed decision from knowledge (2Co 8:10), not a mere passing fancy.

Robertson: 1Co 7:25 - -- As one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful ( hōs ēleēmenos hupo kuriou pistos einai ). Perfect passive participle of eleeō , ...

As one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful ( hōs ēleēmenos hupo kuriou pistos einai ).

Perfect passive participle of eleeō , old verb to receive mercy (eleos ). Pistos is predicate nominative with infinitive einai . This language, so far from being a disclaimer of inspiration, is an express claim to help from the Lord in the forming of this duly considered judgment, which is in no sense a command, but an inspired opinion.

Robertson: 1Co 7:26 - -- I think therefore ( nomizō oun ). Paul proceeds to express therefore the previously mentioned judgment (gnōmēn ) and calls it his opinion, not...

I think therefore ( nomizō oun ).

Paul proceeds to express therefore the previously mentioned judgment (gnōmēn ) and calls it his opinion, not because he is uncertain, but simply because it is not a command, but advice.

Robertson: 1Co 7:26 - -- By reason of the present distress ( dia tēn enestōsan anagkēn ). The participle enestōsan is second perfect active of enistēmi and mean...

By reason of the present distress ( dia tēn enestōsan anagkēn ).

The participle enestōsan is second perfect active of enistēmi and means "standing on"or "present"(cf. Gal 1:4; Heb 9:9). It occurs in 2Th 2:2 of the advent of Christ as not "present."Whether Paul has in mind the hoped for second coming of Jesus in this verse we do not certainly know, though probably so. Jesus had spoken of those calamities which would precede his coming (Mat 24:8.) though Paul had denied saying that the advent was right at hand (2Th 2:2). Anagkē is a strong word (old and common), either for external circumstances or inward sense of duty. It occurs elsewhere for the woes preceding the second coming (Luk 21:23) and also for Paul’ s persecutions (1Th 3:7; 2Co 6:4; 2Co 12:10). Perhaps there is a mingling of both ideas here.

Robertson: 1Co 7:26 - -- Namely. This word is not in the Greek. The infinitive of indirect discourse (huparchein ) after nomizō is repeated with recitative hoti , "That ...

Namely.

This word is not in the Greek. The infinitive of indirect discourse (huparchein ) after nomizō is repeated with recitative hoti , "That the being so is good for a man"(hoti kalon anthrōpōi to houtōs einai ). The use of the article to with einai compels this translation. Probably Paul means for one (anthrōpōi , generic term for man or woman) to remain as he is whether married or unmarried. The copula estin is not expressed. He uses kalon (good) as in 1Co 7:1.

Robertson: 1Co 7:27 - -- Art thou bound to a wife? ( dedesai gunaiki̱ ). Perfect passive indicative of deō , to bind, with dative case gunaiki . Marriage bond as in Rom 7:...

Art thou bound to a wife? ( dedesai gunaiki̱ ).

Perfect passive indicative of deō , to bind, with dative case gunaiki . Marriage bond as in Rom 7:2.

Robertson: 1Co 7:27 - -- Seek not to be loosed ( mē zētei lusin ). Present active imperative with negative mē , "Do not be seeking release"(lusin ) from the marriage b...

Seek not to be loosed ( mē zētei lusin ).

Present active imperative with negative mē , "Do not be seeking release"(lusin ) from the marriage bond, old word, here only in N.T.

Robertson: 1Co 7:27 - -- Seek not a wife ( mē zētei gunaika ). Same construction, Do not be seeking a wife. Bachelors as well as widowers are included in lelusai (loose...

Seek not a wife ( mē zētei gunaika ).

Same construction, Do not be seeking a wife. Bachelors as well as widowers are included in lelusai (loosed, perfect passive indicative of luō ). This advice of Paul he only urges "because of the present necessity"(1Co 7:26). Whether he held on to this opinion later one does not know. Certainly he gives the noblest view of marriage in Eph 5:22-33. Paul does not present it as his opinion for all men at all times. Men feel it their duty to seek a wife.

Robertson: 1Co 7:28 - -- But and if thou marry ( ean de kai gamēsēis ). Condition of the third class, undetermined with prospect of being determined, with the ingressive ...

But and if thou marry ( ean de kai gamēsēis ).

Condition of the third class, undetermined with prospect of being determined, with the ingressive first aorist (late form) active subjunctive with ean : "But if thou also commit matrimony or get married,"in spite of Paul’ s advice to the contrary.

Robertson: 1Co 7:28 - -- Thou hast not sinned ( ouch hēmartes ). Second aorist active indicative of hamartanō , to sin, to miss a mark. Here either Paul uses the timeless...

Thou hast not sinned ( ouch hēmartes ).

Second aorist active indicative of hamartanō , to sin, to miss a mark. Here either Paul uses the timeless (gnomic) aorist indicative or by a swift transition he changes the standpoint (proleptic) in the conclusion from the future (in the condition) to the past. Such mixed conditions are common (Robertson, Grammar , pp. 1020, 1023). Precisely the same construction occurs with the case of the virgin (parthenos ) except that the old form of the first aorist subjunctive (gēmēi ) occurs in place of the late gamēsēi above. The MSS. interchange both examples. There is no special point in the difference in the forms.

Robertson: 1Co 7:28 - -- Shall have tribulation in the flesh ( thlipsin tēi sarki hexousin ). Emphatic position of thlipsin (pressure). See note on 2Co 12:7 skolops tēi...

Shall have tribulation in the flesh ( thlipsin tēi sarki hexousin ).

Emphatic position of thlipsin (pressure). See note on 2Co 12:7 skolops tēi sarki (thorn in the flesh).

Robertson: 1Co 7:28 - -- And I would spare you ( egō de humōn pheidomai ). Possibly conative present middle indicative, I am trying to spare you like agei in Rom 2:4 an...

And I would spare you ( egō de humōn pheidomai ).

Possibly conative present middle indicative, I am trying to spare you like agei in Rom 2:4 and dikaiousthe in Gal 5:4.

Robertson: 1Co 7:29 - -- But this I say ( touto de phēmi . Note phēmi here rather than legō (1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:12). A new turn is here given to the argument about the p...

But this I say ( touto de phēmi . Note phēmi here rather than legō (1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:12).

A new turn is here given to the argument about the present necessity.

Robertson: 1Co 7:29 - -- The time is shortened ( ho kairos sunestalmenos estin ). Perfect periphrastic passive indicative of sustellō , old verb to place together, to draw ...

The time is shortened ( ho kairos sunestalmenos estin ).

Perfect periphrastic passive indicative of sustellō , old verb to place together, to draw together. Only twice in the N.T., here and Act 5:6 which see. Found in the papyri for curtailing expenses. Calvin takes it for the shortness of human life, but apparently Paul pictures the foreshortening of time (opportunity) because of the possible nearness of and hope for the second coming. But in Philippians Paul faces death as his fate (Phi 1:21-26), though still looking for the coming of Christ (1Co 3:20).

Robertson: 1Co 7:29 - -- That henceforth ( to loipon hina ). Proleptic position of to loipon before hina and in the accusative of general reference and hina has the not...

That henceforth ( to loipon hina ).

Proleptic position of to loipon before hina and in the accusative of general reference and hina has the notion of result rather than purpose (Robertson, Grammar , p. 997).

Robertson: 1Co 7:29 - -- As though they had none ( hōs mē echontes ). This use of hōs with the participle for an assumed condition is regular and mē in the Koin...

As though they had none ( hōs mē echontes ).

This use of hōs with the participle for an assumed condition is regular and mē in the Koiné[28928]š is the normal negative of the participle. So the idiom runs on through 1Co 7:31.

Robertson: 1Co 7:30 - -- As though they possessed not ( hōs mē katechontes ). See this use of katechō , old verb to hold down (Luk 14:9), to keep fast, to possess, in 2...

As though they possessed not ( hōs mē katechontes ).

See this use of katechō , old verb to hold down (Luk 14:9), to keep fast, to possess, in 2Co 6:10. Paul means that all earthly relations are to hang loosely about us in view of the second coming.

Robertson: 1Co 7:31 - -- Those that use the world ( hoi chrōmenoi ton kosmon ). Old verb chraomai , usually with the instrumental case, but the accusative occurs in some Cr...

Those that use the world ( hoi chrōmenoi ton kosmon ).

Old verb chraomai , usually with the instrumental case, but the accusative occurs in some Cretan inscriptions and in late writers according to a tendency of verbs to resume the use of the original accusative (Robertson, Grammar , p. 468).

Robertson: 1Co 7:31 - -- As not abusing it ( hōs mē katachrēmenoi ). Perfective use of kata in composition, old verb, but here only in N.T., to use up, use to the ful...

As not abusing it ( hōs mē katachrēmenoi ).

Perfective use of kata in composition, old verb, but here only in N.T., to use up, use to the full. Papyri give examples of this sense. This is more likely the idea than "abusing"it.

Robertson: 1Co 7:31 - -- For the fashion of this world passeth away ( paragei gar to schēma tou kosmou toutou ). Cf. 1Jo 2:17. Schēma is the habitus , the outward app...

For the fashion of this world passeth away ( paragei gar to schēma tou kosmou toutou ).

Cf. 1Jo 2:17. Schēma is the habitus , the outward appearance, old word, in N.T. only here and Phi 2:7. Paragei (old word) means "passes along"like a moving panorama (movie show!). Used of Jesus passing by in Jericho (Mat 20:30).

Robertson: 1Co 7:32 - -- Free from cares ( amerimnous ). Old compound adjective (a privative and merimna , anxiety). In N.T. only here and Mat 28:14 which see.

Free from cares ( amerimnous ).

Old compound adjective (a privative and merimna , anxiety). In N.T. only here and Mat 28:14 which see.

Robertson: 1Co 7:32 - -- The things of the Lord ( ta tou Kuriou ). The ideal state (so as to the widow and the virgin in 1Co 7:33), but even the unmarried do let the cares of...

The things of the Lord ( ta tou Kuriou ).

The ideal state (so as to the widow and the virgin in 1Co 7:33), but even the unmarried do let the cares of the world choke the word (Mar 4:19).

Robertson: 1Co 7:32 - -- How he may please the Lord ( pōs aresēi tōi Kuriōi ). Deliberative subjunctive with pōs retained in an indirect question. Dative case of ...

How he may please the Lord ( pōs aresēi tōi Kuriōi ).

Deliberative subjunctive with pōs retained in an indirect question. Dative case of Kuriōi . Same construction in 1Co 7:33 with pōs aresēi tēi gunaiki (his wife) and in 1Co 7:34 pōs aresēi tōi andri (her husband).

Robertson: 1Co 7:34 - -- And there is a difference also between the wife and the virgin ( kai memeristai kai hē gunē kai hē parthenos ). But the text here is very uncer...

And there is a difference also between the wife and the virgin ( kai memeristai kai hē gunē kai hē parthenos ).

But the text here is very uncertain, almost hopelessly so. Westcott and Hort put kai memeristai in 1Co 7:33 and begin a new sentence with kai hē gunē and add hē agamos after hē gunē , meaning "the widow and the virgin each is anxious for the things of the Lord"like the unmarried man (ho agamos , bachelor or widow) in 1Co 7:32. Possibly so, but the MSS. vary greatly at every point. At any rate Paul’ s point is that the married woman is more disposed to care for the things of the world. But, alas, how many unmarried women (virgins and widows) are after the things of the world today and lead a fast and giddy life.

Robertson: 1Co 7:35 - -- For your own profit ( pros to humōn autōn sumphoron ). Old adjective, advantageous, with neuter article here as substantive, from verb sumpherō...

For your own profit ( pros to humōn autōn sumphoron ).

Old adjective, advantageous, with neuter article here as substantive, from verb sumpherō . In N.T. here only and 1Co 10:33. Note reflexive plural form humōn autōn .

Robertson: 1Co 7:35 - -- Not that I may cast a snare upon you ( ouch hina brochon humin epibalō ). Brochon is a noose or slip-knot used for lassoing animals, old word, on...

Not that I may cast a snare upon you ( ouch hina brochon humin epibalō ).

Brochon is a noose or slip-knot used for lassoing animals, old word, only here in N.T. Papyri have an example "hanged by a noose."Epibalō is second aorist active subjunctive of epiballō , old verb to cast upon. Paul does not wish to capture the Corinthians by lasso and compel them to do what they do not wish about getting married.

Robertson: 1Co 7:35 - -- For that which is seemly ( pros to euschēmon ). Old adjective (eu , well, schēmōn , shapely, comely, from schēma , figure). For the purpose o...

For that which is seemly ( pros to euschēmon ).

Old adjective (eu , well, schēmōn , shapely, comely, from schēma , figure). For the purpose of decorum.

Robertson: 1Co 7:35 - -- Attend upon the Lord ( euparedron ). Adjective construed with pros to , before, late word (Hesychius) from eu , well, and paredros , sitting beside, ...

Attend upon the Lord ( euparedron ).

Adjective construed with pros to , before, late word (Hesychius) from eu , well, and paredros , sitting beside, "for the good position beside the Lord"(associative instrumental case of Kuriōi ). Cf. Mary sitting at the feet of Jesus (Luk 10:39).

Robertson: 1Co 7:35 - -- Without distraction ( aperispastōs ). Late adverb (Polybius, Plutarch, lxx) from the adjective aperispastos (common in the papyri) from a priva...

Without distraction ( aperispastōs ).

Late adverb (Polybius, Plutarch, lxx) from the adjective aperispastos (common in the papyri) from a privative and perispaō , to draw around (Luk 10:40).

Robertson: 1Co 7:36 - -- That he behaveth himself unseemly ( aschēmonein ). Old verb, here only in N.T., from aschēmōn (1Co 12:23), from a privative and schēma . ...

That he behaveth himself unseemly ( aschēmonein ).

Old verb, here only in N.T., from aschēmōn (1Co 12:23), from a privative and schēma . Occurs in the papyri. Infinitive in indirect discourse after nomizei (thinks) with ei (condition of first class, assumed as true).

Robertson: 1Co 7:36 - -- If she be past the flower of her age ( ean ēi huperakmos ). Old word, only here in N.T., from huper (over) and akmē (prime or bloom of life),...

If she be past the flower of her age ( ean ēi huperakmos ).

Old word, only here in N.T., from huper (over) and akmē (prime or bloom of life), past the bloom of youth, superadultus (Vulgate). Compound adjective with feminine form like masculine. Apparently the Corinthians had asked Paul about the duty of a father towards his daughter old enough to marry.

Robertson: 1Co 7:36 - -- If need so requireth ( kai houtōs opheilei ginesthai ). "And it ought to happen."Paul has discussed the problem of marriage for virgins on the grou...

If need so requireth ( kai houtōs opheilei ginesthai ).

"And it ought to happen."Paul has discussed the problem of marriage for virgins on the grounds of expediency. Now he faces the question where the daughter wishes to marry and there is no serious objection to it. The father is advised to consent. Roman and Greek fathers had the control of the marriage of their daughters. "My marriage is my father’ s care; it is not for me to decide about that"(Hermione in Euripides’ Andromache , 987).

Robertson: 1Co 7:36 - -- Let them marry ( gameitōsan ). Present active plural imperative (long form).

Let them marry ( gameitōsan ).

Present active plural imperative (long form).

Robertson: 1Co 7:37 - -- To keep his own virgin daughter ( tērein tēn heautou parthenon ). This means the case when the virgin daughter does not wish to marry and the fat...

To keep his own virgin daughter ( tērein tēn heautou parthenon ).

This means the case when the virgin daughter does not wish to marry and the father agrees with her, he shall do well (kalōs poiēsei ).

Robertson: 1Co 7:38 - -- Doeth well ( kalōs poiei ). So Paul commends the father who gives his daughter in marriage (gamizei ). This verb gamizō has not been found out...

Doeth well ( kalōs poiei ).

So Paul commends the father who gives his daughter in marriage (gamizei ). This verb gamizō has not been found outside the N.T. See Mat 22:30.

Robertson: 1Co 7:38 - -- Shall do better ( kreisson poiēsei ). In view of the present distress (1Co 7:26) and the shortened time (1Co 7:29). And yet, when all is said, Paul...

Shall do better ( kreisson poiēsei ).

In view of the present distress (1Co 7:26) and the shortened time (1Co 7:29). And yet, when all is said, Paul leaves the whole problem of getting married an open question to be settled by each individual case.

Robertson: 1Co 7:39 - -- For so long time as her husband liveth ( Ephesians' hoson chronon zēi ho anēr autēs ). While he lives (tōi zōnti andri ) Paul says in Rom ...

For so long time as her husband liveth ( Ephesians' hoson chronon zēi ho anēr autēs ).

While he lives (tōi zōnti andri ) Paul says in Rom 7:2. This is the ideal and is pertinent today when husbands meet their ex-wives and wives meet their ex-husbands. There is a screw loose somewhere. Paul here treats as a sort of addendum the remarriage of widows. He will discuss it again in 1Ti 5:9-13 and then he will advise younger widows to marry. Paul leaves her free here also to be married again, "only in the Lord"(monon en Kuriōi ). Every marriage ought to be "in the Lord."

Robertson: 1Co 7:39 - -- To be married ( gamēthēnai ) is first aorist passive infinitive followed by the dative relative hōi with unexpressed antecedent toutōi .

To be married ( gamēthēnai )

is first aorist passive infinitive followed by the dative relative hōi with unexpressed antecedent toutōi .

Robertson: 1Co 7:40 - -- Happier ( makariōterā ). Comparative of makarios used in the Beatitudes (Mat 5:3.).

Happier ( makariōterā ).

Comparative of makarios used in the Beatitudes (Mat 5:3.).

Robertson: 1Co 7:40 - -- After my judgment ( kata tēn emēn gnōmēn ). The same word used in 1Co 7:25, not a command.

After my judgment ( kata tēn emēn gnōmēn ).

The same word used in 1Co 7:25, not a command.

Robertson: 1Co 7:40 - -- I think ( dokō ). From dokeō , not nomizō of 1Co 7:26. But he insists that he has "the spirit of God"(pneuma theou ) in the expression of hi...

I think ( dokō ).

From dokeō , not nomizō of 1Co 7:26. But he insists that he has "the spirit of God"(pneuma theou ) in the expression of his inspired judgment on this difficult, complicated, tangled problem of marriage. But he has discharged his duty and leaves each one to decide for himself.

Vincent: 1Co 7:7 - -- As I myself Not unmarried, but continent. It is not necessary to assume that Paul had never been married. Marriage was regarded as a duty among t...

As I myself

Not unmarried, but continent. It is not necessary to assume that Paul had never been married. Marriage was regarded as a duty among the Jews, so that a man was considered to have sinned if he had reached the age of twenty without marrying. The Mishna fixed the age of marriage at seventeen or eighteen, and the Babylonish Jews as early as fourteen. A rabbinical precept declared that a Jew who has no wife is not a man. It is not certain, but most probable, that Saul was a member of the Sanhedrim (Act 26:10). If so, he must have been married, as marriage was a condition of membership. From 1Co 7:8 it is plausibly inferred that he classed himself among widowers. Farrar (" Life and Work of St. Paul," i., 80) has some beautiful remarks upon the evidence for his marriage afforded by the wisdom and tenderness of his words concerning it.

Vincent: 1Co 7:7 - -- Gift ( χάρισμα ) See on Rom 1:11. As regards the matter of continence, fitting some for marriage and some for celibacy.

Gift ( χάρισμα )

See on Rom 1:11. As regards the matter of continence, fitting some for marriage and some for celibacy.

Vincent: 1Co 7:9 - -- Cannot contain ( οὐκ ἐγκρατεύονται ) Rev., have not continence . Only here, and 1Co 9:25, of athletes abstaining from ...

Cannot contain ( οὐκ ἐγκρατεύονται )

Rev., have not continence . Only here, and 1Co 9:25, of athletes abstaining from sensual indulgences when preparing for the games.

Vincent: 1Co 7:9 - -- To burn Continuous present, to burn on: continuance in unsatisfied desire.

To burn

Continuous present, to burn on: continuance in unsatisfied desire.

Vincent: 1Co 7:10 - -- Not I, but the Lord Referring to Christ's declarations respecting divorce, Mat 5:31, Mat 5:32; Mat 19:3-12. Not a distinction between an inspired...

Not I, but the Lord

Referring to Christ's declarations respecting divorce, Mat 5:31, Mat 5:32; Mat 19:3-12. Not a distinction between an inspired and an uninspired saying. Paul means that his readers had no need to apply to him for instruction in the matter of divorce, since they had the words of Christ himself.

Vincent: 1Co 7:12 - -- To the rest He has been speaking to the unmarried (1Co 7:8) and to married parties, both of whom were Christians (1Co 7:10). By the rest he m...

To the rest

He has been speaking to the unmarried (1Co 7:8) and to married parties, both of whom were Christians (1Co 7:10). By the rest he means married couples, one of which remained a heathen.

Vincent: 1Co 7:12 - -- I, not the Lord These cases are not included in Christ's declarations.

I, not the Lord

These cases are not included in Christ's declarations.

Vincent: 1Co 7:12 - -- Be pleased ( συνευδοκεῖ ) Rev., be content . Better, consent . Both the other renderings fail to express the agreement indicate...

Be pleased ( συνευδοκεῖ )

Rev., be content . Better, consent . Both the other renderings fail to express the agreement indicated by σύν together .

Vincent: 1Co 7:14 - -- Is sanctified ( ἡγίασται ) Not, made morally holy, but affiliated to the Christian community - the family of the ἅγιοι sain...

Is sanctified ( ἡγίασται )

Not, made morally holy, but affiliated to the Christian community - the family of the ἅγιοι saints - in virtue of his being " one flesh" with his Christian wife.

Vincent: 1Co 7:15 - -- Is not under bondage ( οὐ δεδούλωται ) A strong word, indicating that Christianity has not made marriage a state of slavery to be...

Is not under bondage ( οὐ δεδούλωται )

A strong word, indicating that Christianity has not made marriage a state of slavery to believers. Compare δέδεται is bound , 1Co 7:39, a milder word. The meaning clearly is that willful desertion on the part of the unbelieving husband or wife sets the other party free. Such cases are not comprehended in Christ's words.

Vincent: 1Co 7:15 - -- Hath called us to peace ( ἐν εἰρήνη κέκληκεν ἡμᾶς ) Rev., correctly, in peace . Compare Gal 1:6, " into the ...

Hath called us to peace ( ἐν εἰρήνη κέκληκεν ἡμᾶς )

Rev., correctly, in peace . Compare Gal 1:6, " into the grace" (ἐν χάριτι , Rev., in ); Eph 4:4, in one hope (ἐν μιᾷ ἐλπίδι ); 1Th 4:7, in sanctification (ἐν ἁγιασμῷ ). Denoting the sphere or element of the divine calling. Enslavement in the marriage relation between the believer and the unbeliever is contrary to the spirit and intent of this calling.

Vincent: 1Co 7:17 - -- But ( εἰ μὴ ) Rev., only . Introducing a limitation to the statement in 1Co 7:15. There is to be no enslavement, only , to give no excu...

But ( εἰ μὴ )

Rev., only . Introducing a limitation to the statement in 1Co 7:15. There is to be no enslavement, only , to give no excuse for the reckless abuse of this general principle, the normal rule of Christian life is that each one should seek to abide in the position in which God has placed him.

Vincent: 1Co 7:17 - -- Ordain ( διατάσσομαι ) See on Mat 11:1.

Ordain ( διατάσσομαι )

See on Mat 11:1.

Vincent: 1Co 7:18 - -- Become uncircumcised ( ἐπισπάσθω ) The reference is to the process of restoring a circumcised person to his natural condition by a s...

Become uncircumcised ( ἐπισπάσθω )

The reference is to the process of restoring a circumcised person to his natural condition by a surgical operation. See Josephus, " Antiquities," 12:5, 1; 1 Macc. 1:15; Smith's " Dictionary of the Bible," Article Circumcision ; Celsus, " De Re Medica," cited in Wetstein with other passages. See, also, Edwards' note on this passage.

Vincent: 1Co 7:20 - -- Calling ( κλήσει ) Not the condition or occupation , a meaning which the word does not have in classical Greek, nor in the New Testa...

Calling ( κλήσει )

Not the condition or occupation , a meaning which the word does not have in classical Greek, nor in the New Testament, where it always signifies the call of God into His kingdom through conversion. Paul means: If God's call was to you as a circumcised man or as an uncircumcised man; as a slave or as a freedman - abide in that condition. Compare 1Co 1:26.

Vincent: 1Co 7:21 - -- Use it rather Whether the apostle means, use the bondage or use the freedom - whether, take advantage of the offer of freedo...

Use it rather

Whether the apostle means, use the bondage or use the freedom - whether, take advantage of the offer of freedom , or, remain in slavery - is, as Dean Stanley remarks, one of the most evenly balanced questions in the interpretation of the New Testament. The force of καὶ even , and the positive injunction of the apostle in 1Co 7:20 and 1Co 7:24, seem to favor the meaning, remain in slavery. The injunction is to be read in the light of 1Co 7:22, and of Gal 3:28; Col 3:11; 1Co 12:13, that freeman and slave are one in Christ; and also of the feeling pervading the Church of the speedy termination of the present economy by the second coming of the Lord. See 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:29. We must be careful to avoid basing our conclusion on the modern sentiment respecting freedom and slavery.

Vincent: 1Co 7:22 - -- Freeman ( ἀπελεύθερος ) Rev., correctly, freedman ; the preposition ἀπ ' from implying previous bondage.

Freeman ( ἀπελεύθερος )

Rev., correctly, freedman ; the preposition ἀπ ' from implying previous bondage.

Vincent: 1Co 7:23 - -- The servants of men Not referring to the outward condition of bondage, but to spiritual subjection to the will and guidance of men as contrasted ...

The servants of men

Not referring to the outward condition of bondage, but to spiritual subjection to the will and guidance of men as contrasted with Christ.

Vincent: 1Co 7:25 - -- Virgins ( παρθένων ) Not the unmarried of both sexes, as Bengel. The use of the word by ecclesiastical writers for an unmarried man has...

Virgins ( παρθένων )

Not the unmarried of both sexes, as Bengel. The use of the word by ecclesiastical writers for an unmarried man has no warrant in classical usage, and may have arisen from the misinterpretation of Rev 14:4, where it is employed adjectivally and metaphorically. In every other case in the New Testament the meaning is unquestionable.

Vincent: 1Co 7:26 - -- The present distress ( τὴν ἐνεστῶσαν ἀνάγκην ) Ἑνεστῶσαν present may also express something which is ...

The present distress ( τὴν ἐνεστῶσαν ἀνάγκην )

Ἑνεστῶσαν present may also express something which is not simply present, but the presence of which foreshadows and inaugurates something to come. Hence it may be rendered impending or setting in . See on Rom 8:38. Ἁνάγκη means originally force , constraint , necessity , and this is its usual meaning in classical Greek; though in the poets it sometimes has the meaning of distress , anguish , which is very common in Hellenistic Greek. Thus Sophocles, of the approach of the crippled Philoctetes: " There falls on my ears the sound of one who creeps slow and painfully (κατ ' ἀνάγκην ." " Philoctetes," 206); and again, of the same: " Stumbling he cries for pain (ὑπ ' ἀνάγκας ," 215). In the Attic orators it occurs in the sense of blood-relationship , like the Latin necessitudo a binding tie . In this sense never in the New Testament. For the original sense of necessity , see Mat 18:7; Luk 14:18; 2Co 9:7; Heb 9:16. For distress , Luk 21:23; 1Th 3:7. The distress is that which should precede Christ's second coming, and which was predicted by the Lord himself, Mat 24:8 sqq. Compare Luk 21:23-28.

Vincent: 1Co 7:28 - -- I spare you ( ὑμῶν φείδομαι ) Rev., " I would spare," is not warranted grammatically, but perhaps avoids the ambiguity of I...

I spare you ( ὑμῶν φείδομαι )

Rev., " I would spare," is not warranted grammatically, but perhaps avoids the ambiguity of I spare , which might be understood: I spare you further mention of these things . The meaning is: I give you these injunctions in order to spare you the tribulation of the flesh.

Vincent: 1Co 7:29 - -- Time ( καιρὸς ) Not, the period of mortal life; but the time which must elapse before the Lord appears.

Time ( καιρὸς )

Not, the period of mortal life; but the time which must elapse before the Lord appears.

Vincent: 1Co 7:29 - -- Short ( συνεσταλμένος ) Rev., correctly, giving the force of the participle, shortened . Compare Mar 13:20, and see on hasting ...

Short ( συνεσταλμένος )

Rev., correctly, giving the force of the participle, shortened . Compare Mar 13:20, and see on hasting unto , 2Pe 3:12. The word means to draw together or contract . Only here and Act 5:6, where it is used of the winding up of Ananias' corpse. In classical Greek of furling sails, packing luggage, reducing expenses, etc. Applied to time, the word is very graphic.

Vincent: 1Co 7:29 - -- It remaineth that ( τὸ λοιπόν ἵνα ) The meaning is rather henceforth , or for the future . That (ἵνα ) in any c...

It remaineth that ( τὸ λοιπόν ἵνα )

The meaning is rather henceforth , or for the future . That (ἵνα ) in any case is to be construed with the time is shortened . According to the punctuation by different editors, we may read either: the time is shortened that henceforth both those , etc.; or, the time is shortened henceforth , that both those , etc. The former is preferable. The time is shortened that henceforth Christians may hold earthly ties and possessions but loosely.

Vincent: 1Co 7:31 - -- Abusing ( καταχρώμενοι ) Only here and 1Co 9:18. The verb means to use up or consume by using . Hence the sense of misuse...

Abusing ( καταχρώμενοι )

Only here and 1Co 9:18. The verb means to use up or consume by using . Hence the sense of misuse by overuse . So A.V. and Rev., abuse . But the American Rev., and Rev. at 1Co 9:18, use to the full , thus according better with the preceding antitheses, which do not contrast what is right and wrong in itself (as use and abuse), but what is right in itself with what is proper under altered circumstances. In ordinary cases it is right for Christians to sorrow; but they should live now as in the near future, when earthly sorrow is to be done away. It is right for them to live in the married state, but they should " assimilate their present condition" to that in which they neither marry nor are given in marriage.

Vincent: 1Co 7:31 - -- Passeth away ( παράγει ) Or, as some, the continuous present, is passing . If the former, the nature of the worldly order is expres...

Passeth away ( παράγει )

Or, as some, the continuous present, is passing . If the former, the nature of the worldly order is expressed. It is transitory. If the latter, the fact ; it is actually passing, with a suggestion of the nearness of the consummation. The context seems to indicate the latter.

Vincent: 1Co 7:32 - -- Without carefulness ( ἀμερίμνους ) Not a good translation, because carefulness has lost its earlier sense of anxiety . So Latime...

Without carefulness ( ἀμερίμνους )

Not a good translation, because carefulness has lost its earlier sense of anxiety . So Latimer: " This wicked carefulness of men, when they seek how to live - like as if there were no God at all." See on take no thought , Mat 6:25. Rev., free from cares . Ignatius uses the phrase ἐν ἀμεριμνίᾳ Θεοῦ in godly carelessness (Polycarp, 7).

Vincent: 1Co 7:34 - -- There is a difference The textual question here is very perplexing, and it is well-nigh impossible to explain the differences to the English read...

There is a difference

The textual question here is very perplexing, and it is well-nigh impossible to explain the differences to the English reader. He must observe, 1st. That γυνὴ wife is also the general term for woman , whether virgin, married, or widow. 2nd. That μεμέρισται A.V., there is a difference , literally means, is divided , so that the literal rendering of the A.V., would be, the wife and the virgin are divided . Some of the best texts insert καὶ and both before and after is divided , and join that verb with the close of 1Co 7:33, so that it reads: careth for the things of the world how he may please his wife , and he is distracted . This makes γυνὴ and παρθένος (A.V., wife and virgin ) begin a new sentence connected with the preceding by καὶ and Γυνὴ is rendered woman , and the words η αγαμος the unmarried , instead of beginning a sentence as A.V., are placed directly after woman as a qualifying phrase, so that the reading is ἡ γυνὴ ἡ ἄγαμος the unmarried woman , and both this and ἡ παρθένος the virgin are nominative to μεριμνᾷ careth . The whole, then, from the beginning of 1Co 7:33, will read: But he who is married careth for the things of the world how he may please his wife , and he is distracted ; and the unmarried woman and the virgin care for the things of the Lord .

Vincent: 1Co 7:35 - -- Snare ( βρόχον ) Lit., a noose or slip-knot for hanging or strangling. Thus Homer of Jocasta: " She went to Hades having suspended ...

Snare ( βρόχον )

Lit., a noose or slip-knot for hanging or strangling. Thus Homer of Jocasta: " She went to Hades having suspended a noose on high from the lofty roof" (" Odyssey," 11, 278). Sophocles, of Antigone: " We descried her hanging by the neck, slung by a thread-wrought halter of fine linen" (" Antigone," 1222). Also a snare for birds ; the meshes of a net .

Vincent: 1Co 7:35 - -- That ye may attend ( πρὸς - εὐπάρεδρον ) Only here in the New Testament. From εὐ well , πάρεδρος setting ...

That ye may attend ( πρὸς - εὐπάρεδρον )

Only here in the New Testament. From εὐ well , πάρεδρος setting beside . That ye may attend is a kind of circumlocution. The Greek reads literally: for that which is seemly and for that which is assiduous . Assiduous conveys the sense of the word as nearly as possible, since etymologically it means sitting close at . One is reminded of Mary at Bethany sitting at Jesus' feet, Luk 10:39.

Vincent: 1Co 7:35 - -- Without distraction ( ἀπερισπάστως ) See on Luk 10:40. The same word compounded here with ἀ not , is used of Martha's being ...

Without distraction ( ἀπερισπάστως )

See on Luk 10:40. The same word compounded here with ἀ not , is used of Martha's being cumbered or distracted with much serving.

Vincent: 1Co 7:36 - -- Behaveth himself uncomely ( ἀσχημονεῖν ) Acts unbecomingly, either by throwing temptation in the daughter's way by constraining her...

Behaveth himself uncomely ( ἀσχημονεῖν )

Acts unbecomingly, either by throwing temptation in the daughter's way by constraining her to remain unmarried, or by exposing her to the disgrace which was supposed to attach to the unmarried state. But Paul, in his preceding words, has regarded the latter consideration as set aside by the peculiar circumstances of the time.

Vincent: 1Co 7:36 - -- His virgin ( τὴν παρθένον αὐτοῦ ) Rev. properly inserts daughter . It is an unusual expression for daughter . Xenophon ...

His virgin ( τὴν παρθένον αὐτοῦ )

Rev. properly inserts daughter . It is an unusual expression for daughter . Xenophon uses it with the word θυγάτηρ daughter (" Cyropaedia," iv., 6, 9), and Oedipus speaks of his two daughters as my maidens (Sophocles, " Oedipus Tyrannus," 1462)

Vincent: 1Co 7:36 - -- Pass the flower of her age ( ᾐ ὑπέρακμος ) Rev., correctly, be past . Beyond the bloom of life. Plato fixes the point at twe...

Pass the flower of her age ( ᾐ ὑπέρακμος )

Rev., correctly, be past . Beyond the bloom of life. Plato fixes the point at twenty years (" Republic," 460). Diogenes Laertius says: " An undowered maiden is a heavy burden to a father after she has outrun the flower of her age" (" Lycon," v., 65)

Vincent: 1Co 7:36 - -- Let them marry Evidently there was assumed to be another in the case beside the father and the virgin.

Let them marry

Evidently there was assumed to be another in the case beside the father and the virgin.

Vincent: 1Co 7:37 - -- Necessity ( ἀνάγκην ) Either outward or moral constraint. See on 1Co 7:26, and note on Luk 14:18.

Necessity ( ἀνάγκην )

Either outward or moral constraint. See on 1Co 7:26, and note on Luk 14:18.

Vincent: 1Co 7:37 - -- Power over his own will ( ἐξουσίαν περὶ τοῦ ἰδίου θελήματος ) The A.V. is ambiguous, and might be unde...

Power over his own will ( ἐξουσίαν περὶ τοῦ ἰδίου θελήματος )

The A.V. is ambiguous, and might be understood to imply self-control. The meaning is rather: is free to act as he pleases . Rev., as touching his own will . The repetition of his own emphasizes the fact that the disposal of the daughter lay wholly in the parent's power. Among the Greeks and Romans the choice of a wife was rarely grounded upon affection. In many cases the father chose for his son a wife whom the latter had never seen, or compelled him to marry for the sake of checking his extravagances. Thus Terence pictures a father meeting his son in the forum, and saving. " You are to be married to-day, get ready" (" Andria," i., 5) Nor was the consent of a woman generally thought necessary. She was obliged to submit to the wishes of her parents, and perhaps to receive a stranger. Thus Hermione says: " My marriage is my father's care: it is not for me to decide about that" (Euripides, " Andromache," 987). Under the patriarchal and Mosaic dispensations, the father's power over the children in the matter of marriage was paramount, and their consent was not required. After the Exile the parents could betroth their children, while minors, at their pleasure; but when they became of age their consent was required, and if betrothed during minority, they had afterward the right of insisting upon divorce.

Vincent: 1Co 7:39 - -- Be dead ( κοιμηθῇ ) Lit., have fallen asleep . See on Act 7:60; see on 2Pe 3:4; compare Rom 7:2, where the usual word for die , ...

Be dead ( κοιμηθῇ )

Lit., have fallen asleep . See on Act 7:60; see on 2Pe 3:4; compare Rom 7:2, where the usual word for die , ἀποθάνῃ is used. In that passage Paul is discussing the abstract question. Here the inference is more personal, which is perhaps the reason for his using the more tender expression.

Vincent: 1Co 7:40 - -- Happier ( μακαριωτέρα ) More blessed is preferable. The word has a higher meaning than happy . See on Mat 5:3. " Such, if on hig...

Happier ( μακαριωτέρα )

More blessed is preferable. The word has a higher meaning than happy . See on Mat 5:3.

" Such, if on high their thoughts are set,

Nor in the stream the source forget,

If prompt to quit the bliss they know,

Following the Lamb where'er He go,

By purest pleasure unbeguiled

To idolize or wife or child:

Such wedded souls our God shall own

For faultless virgins round His throne."

Keble, " Christian Year ," Wednesday before Easter .

Wesley: 1Co 7:6 - -- Concerning your separating for a time and coming together again. Perhaps he refers also to 1Co 7:2.

Concerning your separating for a time and coming together again. Perhaps he refers also to 1Co 7:2.

Wesley: 1Co 7:7 - -- I would that all believers who are now unmarried would remain "eunuchs for the kingdom of heaven's sake" St. Paul, having tasted the sweetness of this...

I would that all believers who are now unmarried would remain "eunuchs for the kingdom of heaven's sake" St. Paul, having tasted the sweetness of this liberty, wished others to enjoy it, as well as himself.

Wesley: 1Co 7:7 - -- According to our Lord's declaration, "All men cannot receive this saying, save they," the happy few, to whom it is given," Mat 19:11.

According to our Lord's declaration, "All men cannot receive this saying, save they," the happy few, to whom it is given," Mat 19:11.

Wesley: 1Co 7:8 - -- That St. Paul was then single is certain and from Act 7:58, compared with the following parts of the history, it seems probable that he always was so....

That St. Paul was then single is certain and from Act 7:58, compared with the following parts of the history, it seems probable that he always was so. It does not appear that this declaration, any more than 1Co 7:1, hath any reference at all to a state of persecution.

Wesley: 1Co 7:10 - -- Only.

Only.

Wesley: 1Co 7:10 - -- Christ; by his express command, Mat 5:32.

Christ; by his express command, Mat 5:32.

Wesley: 1Co 7:11 - -- Contrary to this express prohibition.

Contrary to this express prohibition.

Wesley: 1Co 7:11 - -- Except for the cause of adultery.

Except for the cause of adultery.

Wesley: 1Co 7:12 - -- Who are married to unbelievers.

Who are married to unbelievers.

Wesley: 1Co 7:12 - -- By revelation from God, though our Lord hath not left any commandment concerning it.

By revelation from God, though our Lord hath not left any commandment concerning it.

Wesley: 1Co 7:12 - -- The Jews, indeed, were obliged of old to put away their idolatrous wives, Ezr 10:3; but their case was quite different. They were absolutely forbid to...

The Jews, indeed, were obliged of old to put away their idolatrous wives, Ezr 10:3; but their case was quite different. They were absolutely forbid to marry idolatrous women; but the persons here spoken of were married while they were both in a state of heathenism.

Wesley: 1Co 7:14 - -- Else your children would have been brought up heathens; whereas now they are Christians. As if he had said, Ye see the proof of it before your eyes.

Else your children would have been brought up heathens; whereas now they are Christians. As if he had said, Ye see the proof of it before your eyes.

Wesley: 1Co 7:15 - -- A Christian man or woman.

A Christian man or woman.

Wesley: 1Co 7:15 - -- is at full liberty.

is at full liberty.

Wesley: 1Co 7:15 - -- To live peaceably with them, if it be possible.

To live peaceably with them, if it be possible.

Wesley: 1Co 7:17 - -- The various stations of life, and various relations, to every one, let him take care to discharge his duty therein. The gospel disannuls none of these...

The various stations of life, and various relations, to every one, let him take care to discharge his duty therein. The gospel disannuls none of these.

Wesley: 1Co 7:17 - -- As a point of the highest concern.

As a point of the highest concern.

Wesley: 1Co 7:19 - -- Will neither promote nor obstruct our salvation. The one point is, keeping the commandments of God; "faith working by love."

Will neither promote nor obstruct our salvation. The one point is, keeping the commandments of God; "faith working by love."

Wesley: 1Co 7:20 - -- The outward state.

The outward state.

Wesley: 1Co 7:20 - -- When God calls him. Let him not seek to change this, without a clear direction from Providence.

When God calls him. Let him not seek to change this, without a clear direction from Providence.

Wesley: 1Co 7:21 - -- Do not anxiously seek liberty. But if thou canst be free, use it rather - Embrace the opportunity.

Do not anxiously seek liberty. But if thou canst be free, use it rather - Embrace the opportunity.

Wesley: 1Co 7:22 - -- Is free in this respect. The Greek word implies one that was a slave, but now is free.

Is free in this respect. The Greek word implies one that was a slave, but now is free.

Wesley: 1Co 7:22 - -- Not free in this respect; not at liberty to do his own will.

Not free in this respect; not at liberty to do his own will.

Wesley: 1Co 7:23 - -- Ye belong to God; therefore, where it can be avoided, do not become the bondslaves of men - Which may expose you to many temptations.

Ye belong to God; therefore, where it can be avoided, do not become the bondslaves of men - Which may expose you to many temptations.

Wesley: 1Co 7:24 - -- Doing all things as unto God, and as in his immediate presence. They who thus abide with God preserve an holy indifference with regard to outward thin...

Doing all things as unto God, and as in his immediate presence. They who thus abide with God preserve an holy indifference with regard to outward things.

Wesley: 1Co 7:25 - -- Of either sex.

Of either sex.

Wesley: 1Co 7:25 - -- By a particular revelation. Nor was it necessary he should; for the apostles wrote nothing which was not divinely inspired: but with this difference, ...

By a particular revelation. Nor was it necessary he should; for the apostles wrote nothing which was not divinely inspired: but with this difference, - sometimes they had a particular revelation, and a special commandment; at other times they wrote from the divine light which abode with them, the standing treasure of the Spirit of God. And this, also, was not their private opinion, but a divine rule of faith and practice. As one whom God hath made faithful in my apostolic office; who therefore faithfully deliver what I receive from him.

Wesley: 1Co 7:26-27 - -- While any church is under persecution.

While any church is under persecution.

Wesley: 1Co 7:26-27 - -- Whether married or unmarried. St. Paul does not here urge the present distress as a reason for celibacy, any more than for marriage; but for a man's n...

Whether married or unmarried. St. Paul does not here urge the present distress as a reason for celibacy, any more than for marriage; but for a man's not seeking to alter his state, whatever it be, but making the best of it.

Wesley: 1Co 7:28 - -- Many outward troubles.

Many outward troubles.

Wesley: 1Co 7:28 - -- I speak as little and as tenderly as possible.

I speak as little and as tenderly as possible.

Wesley: 1Co 7:29 - -- With great confidence. The time of our abode here is short. It plainly follows, that even they who have wives be as serious, zealous, active, dead to ...

With great confidence. The time of our abode here is short. It plainly follows, that even they who have wives be as serious, zealous, active, dead to the world, as devoted to God, as holy in all manner of conversation, as if they had none - By so easy a transition does the apostle slide from every thing else to the one thing needful; and, forgetting whatever is temporal, is swallowed up in eternity.

Wesley: 1Co 7:30 - -- "Though sorrowful, yet always rejoicing." They that rejoice, as if they rejoiced not - Tempering their joy with godly fear. They that buy, as if they ...

"Though sorrowful, yet always rejoicing." They that rejoice, as if they rejoiced not - Tempering their joy with godly fear. They that buy, as if they possessed not - Knowing themselves to be only stewards, not proprietors.

Wesley: 1Co 7:31 - -- Not seeking happiness in it, but in God: using every thing therein only in such a manner and degree as most tends to the knowledge and love of God.

Not seeking happiness in it, but in God: using every thing therein only in such a manner and degree as most tends to the knowledge and love of God.

Wesley: 1Co 7:31 - -- This marrying, weeping, rejoicing, and all the rest, not only will pass, but now passeth away, is this moment flying off like a shadow.

This marrying, weeping, rejoicing, and all the rest, not only will pass, but now passeth away, is this moment flying off like a shadow.

Wesley: 1Co 7:32 - -- For this flying moment.

For this flying moment.

Wesley: 1Co 7:32 - -- Without any incumbrance of your thoughts.

Without any incumbrance of your thoughts.

Wesley: 1Co 7:32 - -- If he understand and use the advantage he enjoys - Careth only for the things of the Lord, how he may please the Lord.

If he understand and use the advantage he enjoys - Careth only for the things of the Lord, how he may please the Lord.

Wesley: 1Co 7:33 - -- And it in his duty so to do, so far as becomes a Christian.

And it in his duty so to do, so far as becomes a Christian.

Wesley: 1Co 7:33 - -- And provide all things needful for her and his family.

And provide all things needful for her and his family.

Wesley: 1Co 7:34 - -- Whether the church be under persecution or not.

Whether the church be under persecution or not.

Wesley: 1Co 7:34 - -- If she know and use her privilege.

If she know and use her privilege.

Wesley: 1Co 7:34 - -- All her time, care, and thoughts centre in this, how she may be holy both in body and spirit. This is the standing advantage of a single life, in all ...

All her time, care, and thoughts centre in this, how she may be holy both in body and spirit. This is the standing advantage of a single life, in all ages and nations. But who makes a suitable use of it?

Wesley: 1Co 7:35 - -- Who are not able to receive this saying.

Who are not able to receive this saying.

Wesley: 1Co 7:35 - -- Who are able.

Who are able.

Wesley: 1Co 7:35 - -- The word translated wait signifies sitting close by a person, in a good posture to hear. So Mary sat at the feet of Jesus, Luk 10:39.

The word translated wait signifies sitting close by a person, in a good posture to hear. So Mary sat at the feet of Jesus, Luk 10:39.

Wesley: 1Co 7:35 - -- Without having the mind drawn any way from its centre; from its close attention to God; by any person, or thing, or care, or incumbrance whatsoever.

Without having the mind drawn any way from its centre; from its close attention to God; by any person, or thing, or care, or incumbrance whatsoever.

Wesley: 1Co 7:36 - -- Unbecoming his character. Toward his virgin daughter, if she be above age, (or of full age,) and need so require, 1Co 7:9, let them marry - Her suitor...

Unbecoming his character. Toward his virgin daughter, if she be above age, (or of full age,) and need so require, 1Co 7:9, let them marry - Her suitor and she.

Wesley: 1Co 7:37 - -- Where there is no such need.

Where there is no such need.

Wesley: 1Co 7:37 - -- Which would incline him to desire the increase of his family, and the strengthening it by new relations.

Which would incline him to desire the increase of his family, and the strengthening it by new relations.

Wesley: 1Co 7:38 - -- If there be no necessity.

If there be no necessity.

Wesley: 1Co 7:39 - -- That is, only if Christians marry Christians: a standing direction, and one of the utmost importance.

That is, only if Christians marry Christians: a standing direction, and one of the utmost importance.

Wesley: 1Co 7:40 - -- As well as any of you.

As well as any of you.

Wesley: 1Co 7:40 - -- Teaching me all things This does not imply any doubt; but the strongest certainty of it, together with a reproof of them for calling it in question. W...

Teaching me all things This does not imply any doubt; but the strongest certainty of it, together with a reproof of them for calling it in question. Whoever, therefore, would conclude from hence, that St. Paul was not certain he had the Spirit of Christ, neither understands the true import of the words, nor considers how expressly he lays claim to the Spirit, both in this epistle, 1Co 2:16, 1Co 14:37, and the other. 2Co 13:3. Indeed, it may be doubted whether the word here and elsewhere translated think, does not always imply the fullest and strongest assurance. See 1Co 10:12.

JFB: 1Co 7:6 - -- Not by God's permission to me to say it: but, "by way of permission to you, not as a commandment." "This" refers to the directions, 1Co 7:2-5.

Not by God's permission to me to say it: but, "by way of permission to you, not as a commandment." "This" refers to the directions, 1Co 7:2-5.

JFB: 1Co 7:7 - -- Having tile gift of continence (Mat 19:11-12). This wish does not hold good absolutely, else the extension of mankind and of the Church would cease; b...

Having tile gift of continence (Mat 19:11-12). This wish does not hold good absolutely, else the extension of mankind and of the Church would cease; but relatively to "the present distress" (1Co 7:26).

JFB: 1Co 7:8 - -- In general, of both sexes (1Co 7:10-11).

In general, of both sexes (1Co 7:10-11).

JFB: 1Co 7:8 - -- In particular.

In particular.

JFB: 1Co 7:8 - -- Unmarried (1Co 9:5).

Unmarried (1Co 9:5).

JFB: 1Co 7:9 - -- That is, "have not continency."

That is, "have not continency."

JFB: 1Co 7:9 - -- With the secret flame of lust, which lays waste the whole inner man. (Compare AUGUSTINE [Holy Virginity]). The dew of God's grace is needed to stifle ...

With the secret flame of lust, which lays waste the whole inner man. (Compare AUGUSTINE [Holy Virginity]). The dew of God's grace is needed to stifle the flame, which otherwise would thrust men at last into hell-fire.

JFB: 1Co 7:10 - -- (Compare 1Co 7:12, 1Co 7:25, 1Co 7:40). In ordinary cases he writes on inspired apostolic authority (1Co 14:37); but here on the direct authority of t...

(Compare 1Co 7:12, 1Co 7:25, 1Co 7:40). In ordinary cases he writes on inspired apostolic authority (1Co 14:37); but here on the direct authority of the Lord Himself (Mar 10:11-12). In both cases alike the things written are inspired by the Spirit of God "but not all for all time, nor all on the primary truths of the faith" [ALFORD].

JFB: 1Co 7:10 - -- Literally, "be separated from." Probably the separation on either side, whether owing to the husband or to the wife, is forbidden.

Literally, "be separated from." Probably the separation on either side, whether owing to the husband or to the wife, is forbidden.

JFB: 1Co 7:11 - -- Or "be separated." If the sin of separation has been committed, that of a new marriage is not to be added (Mat 5:32).

Or "be separated." If the sin of separation has been committed, that of a new marriage is not to be added (Mat 5:32).

JFB: 1Co 7:11 - -- By appeasing her husband's displeasure, and recovering his good will.

By appeasing her husband's displeasure, and recovering his good will.

JFB: 1Co 7:11 - -- In Mat 5:32 the only exception allowed is, "saving for the cause of fornication."

In Mat 5:32 the only exception allowed is, "saving for the cause of fornication."

JFB: 1Co 7:12 - -- The other classes (besides "the married," 1Co 7:10, where both husband and wife are believers) about whom the Corinthians had inquired, namely, those ...

The other classes (besides "the married," 1Co 7:10, where both husband and wife are believers) about whom the Corinthians had inquired, namely, those involved in mixed marriages with unbelievers.

JFB: 1Co 7:12 - -- By any direct command spoken by Him.

By any direct command spoken by Him.

JFB: 1Co 7:12 - -- Greek, "consents": implying his wish in the first instance, with which hers concurs.

Greek, "consents": implying his wish in the first instance, with which hers concurs.

JFB: 1Co 7:13 - -- A believer.

A believer.

JFB: 1Co 7:13 - -- "her husband," instead of "him," is the reading of the oldest manuscripts The Greek for "leave" is the same as in 1Co 7:12, "put away"; translate, "Le...

"her husband," instead of "him," is the reading of the oldest manuscripts The Greek for "leave" is the same as in 1Co 7:12, "put away"; translate, "Let her not put away [that is, part with] her husband." The wife had the power of effecting a divorce by Greek and Roman law.

JFB: 1Co 7:14 - -- Those inseparably connected with the people of God are hallowed thereby, so that the latter may retain the connection without impairing their own sanc...

Those inseparably connected with the people of God are hallowed thereby, so that the latter may retain the connection without impairing their own sanctity (compare 1Ti 4:5); nay, rather imparting to the former externally some degree of their own hallowed character, and so preparing the way for the unbeliever becoming at last sanctified inwardly by faith.

JFB: 1Co 7:14 - -- Rather, "in . . . in"; that is, in virtue of the marriage tie between them.

Rather, "in . . . in"; that is, in virtue of the marriage tie between them.

JFB: 1Co 7:14 - -- The oldest manuscripts read, "by the brother." It is the fact of the husband being a "brother," that is, a Christian, though the wife is not so, that ...

The oldest manuscripts read, "by the brother." It is the fact of the husband being a "brother," that is, a Christian, though the wife is not so, that sanctifies or hallows the union.

JFB: 1Co 7:14 - -- That is, beyond the hallowed pale of God's people: in contrast to "holy," that is, all that is within the consecrated limits [CONYBEARE and HOWSON]. T...

That is, beyond the hallowed pale of God's people: in contrast to "holy," that is, all that is within the consecrated limits [CONYBEARE and HOWSON]. The phraseology accords with that of the Jews, who regarded the heathen as "unclean," and all of the elect nation as "holy," that is, partakers of the holy covenant. Children were included in the covenant, as God made it not only with Abraham, but with his "seed after" him (Gen 17:7). So the faith of one Christian parent gives to the children a near relationship to the Church, just as if both parents were Christians (compare Rom 11:16). Timothy, the bearer of this Epistle, is an instance in point (Act 16:1). Paul appeals to the Corinthians as recognizing the principle, that the infants of heathen parents would not be admissible to Christian baptism, because there is no faith on the part of the parents; but where one parent is a believer, the children are regarded as not aliens from, but admissible even in infancy as sharers in, the Christian covenant: for the Church presumes that the believing parent will rear the child in the Christian faith. Infant baptism tacitly superseded infant circumcision, just as the Christian Lord's day gradually superseded the Jewish sabbath, without our having any express command for, or record of, transference. The setting aside of circumcision and of sabbaths in the case of the Gentiles was indeed expressly commanded by the apostles and Paul, but the substitution of infant baptism and of the Lord's day were tacitly adopted, not expressly enacted. No explicit mention of it occurs till IRENÆUS in the third century; but no society of Christians that we read of disputed its propriety till fifteen hundred years after Christ. Anabaptists would have us defer baptism till maturity as the child cannot understand the nature of it. But a child may be made heir of an estate: it is his, though incapable at the time of using or comprehending its advantage; he is not hereafter to acquire the title and claim to it: he will hereafter understand his claim, and be capable of employing his wealth: he will then, moreover, become responsible for the use he makes of it [ARCHBISHOP WHATELY].

JFB: 1Co 7:15 - -- That is, wishes for separation. Translate, "separateth himself": offended with her Christianity, and refusing to live with her unless she renounce it.

That is, wishes for separation. Translate, "separateth himself": offended with her Christianity, and refusing to live with her unless she renounce it.

JFB: 1Co 7:15 - -- Is not bound to renounce the faith for the sake of retaining her unbelieving husband [HAMMOND]. So Deu 13:6; Mat 10:35-37; Luk 14:26. The believer doe...

Is not bound to renounce the faith for the sake of retaining her unbelieving husband [HAMMOND]. So Deu 13:6; Mat 10:35-37; Luk 14:26. The believer does not lie under the same obligation in the case of a union with an unbeliever, as in the case of one with a believer. In the former case he is not bound not to separate, if the unbeliever separate or "depart," in the latter nothing but "fornication" justifies separation [PHOTIUS in Æcumenius].

JFB: 1Co 7:15 - -- Our Christian calling is one that tends to "peace" (Rom 12:18), not quarrelling; therefore the believer should not ordinarily depart from the unbeliev...

Our Christian calling is one that tends to "peace" (Rom 12:18), not quarrelling; therefore the believer should not ordinarily depart from the unbelieving consort (1Co 7:12-14), on the one hand; and on the other, in the exceptional case of the unbeliever desiring to depart, the believer is not bound to force the other party to stay in a state of continual discord (Mat 5:32). Better still it would be not to enter into such unequal alliances at all (1Co 7:40; 2Co 6:14).

JFB: 1Co 7:16 - -- What knowest thou but that by staying with thy unbelieving partner thou mayest save him or her? Enforcing the precept to stay with the unbelieving con...

What knowest thou but that by staying with thy unbelieving partner thou mayest save him or her? Enforcing the precept to stay with the unbelieving consort (1Co 7:12-14). So Ruth the Moabitess became a convert to her husband's faith: and Joseph and Moses probably gained over their wives. So conversely the unbelieving husband may be won by the believing wife (1Pe 3:1) [CALVIN]. Or else (1Co 7:15), if thy unbelieving consort wishes to depart, let him go, so that thou mayest live "in peace": for thou canst not be sure of converting him, so as to make it obligatory on thee at all costs to stay with him against his will [MENOCHIUS and ALFORD].

JFB: 1Co 7:16 - -- Be the instrument of salvation to (Jam 5:20).

Be the instrument of salvation to (Jam 5:20).

JFB: 1Co 7:17 - -- Greek, "If not." "Only." Caution that believers should not make this direction (1Co 7:16; as ALFORD explains it) a ground for separating "of themselve...

Greek, "If not." "Only." Caution that believers should not make this direction (1Co 7:16; as ALFORD explains it) a ground for separating "of themselves" (1Co 7:12-14). Or, But if there be no hope of gaining over the unbeliever, still let the general principle be maintained, "As the Lord hath allotted to each, as God hath called each, so let him walk" (so the Greek in the oldest reading); let him walk in the path allotted to him and wherein he was called. The heavenly calling does not set aside our earthly callings.

JFB: 1Co 7:17 - -- Ye also therefore should obey.

Ye also therefore should obey.

JFB: 1Co 7:18 - -- By surgical operation (1 Maccabees 1:15; JOSEPHUS [Antiquities, 12.5.1]). Some Christians in excess of anti-Jewish feeling might be tempted to this.

By surgical operation (1 Maccabees 1:15; JOSEPHUS [Antiquities, 12.5.1]). Some Christians in excess of anti-Jewish feeling might be tempted to this.

JFB: 1Co 7:18 - -- As the Judaizing Christians would have him (Act 15:1, Act 15:5, Act 15:24; Gal 5:2).

As the Judaizing Christians would have him (Act 15:1, Act 15:5, Act 15:24; Gal 5:2).

JFB: 1Co 7:19 - -- Namely, is all in all. In Gal 5:6 this "keeping of the commandments of God" is defined to be "faith which worketh by love"; and in Gal 6:15, "a new cr...

Namely, is all in all. In Gal 5:6 this "keeping of the commandments of God" is defined to be "faith which worketh by love"; and in Gal 6:15, "a new creature." Circumcision was a commandment of God: but not for ever, as "love."

JFB: 1Co 7:20 - -- That is, the condition from which he is called a Jew, a Greek, a slave, or a freeman.

That is, the condition from which he is called a Jew, a Greek, a slave, or a freeman.

JFB: 1Co 7:21 - -- Let it not be a trouble to thee that thou art a servant or slave.

Let it not be a trouble to thee that thou art a servant or slave.

JFB: 1Co 7:21 - -- Continue rather in thy state as a servant (1Co 7:20; Gal 3:28; 1Ti 6:2). The Greek, "But if even thou mayest be made free, use it," and the context (1...

Continue rather in thy state as a servant (1Co 7:20; Gal 3:28; 1Ti 6:2). The Greek, "But if even thou mayest be made free, use it," and the context (1Co 7:20, 1Co 7:22) favors this view [CHRYSOSTOM, BENGEL, and ALFORD]. This advice (if this translation be right) is not absolute, as the spirit of the Gospel is against slavery. What is advised here is, contentment under one's existing condition (1Co 7:24), though an undesirable one, since in our union with Christ all outward disparities of condition are compensated (1Co 7:22). Be not unduly impatient to cast off "even" thy condition as a servant by unlawful means (1Pe 2:13-18); as, for example, Onesimus did by fleeing (Phm 1:10-18). The precept (1Co 7:23), "Become not (so the Greek) the servants of men," implies plainly that slavery is abnormal (compare Lev 25:42). "Men stealers," or slave dealers, are classed in 1Ti 1:10, with "murderers" and "perjurers." NEANDER, GROTIUS, &c., explain, "If called, being a slave, to Christianity, be content--but yet, if also thou canst be free (as a still additional good, which if thou canst not attain, be satisfied without it; but which, if offered to thee, is not to be despised), make use of the opportunity of becoming free, rather than by neglecting it to remain a slave." I prefer this latter view, as more according to the tenor of the Gospel, and fully justified by the Greek.

JFB: 1Co 7:22 - -- (Phm 1:16) --rather, "freedman." Though a slave externally, spiritually made free by the Lord: from sin, Joh 8:36; from the law, Rom 8:2; from "circu...

(Phm 1:16) --rather, "freedman." Though a slave externally, spiritually made free by the Lord: from sin, Joh 8:36; from the law, Rom 8:2; from "circumcision," 1Co 7:19; Gal 5:1.

JFB: 1Co 7:22 - -- (1Co 9:21). Love makes Christ's service perfect freedom (Mat 11:29-30; Gal 5:13; 1Pe 2:16).

(1Co 9:21). Love makes Christ's service perfect freedom (Mat 11:29-30; Gal 5:13; 1Pe 2:16).

JFB: 1Co 7:23 - -- Greek, "become not ye." Paul here changes from "thou" (1Co 7:21) to "ye." YE ALL are "bought" with the blood of Christ, whatever be your earthly state...

Greek, "become not ye." Paul here changes from "thou" (1Co 7:21) to "ye." YE ALL are "bought" with the blood of Christ, whatever be your earthly state (1Co 6:20). "Become not servants to men," either externally, or spiritually; the former sense applying to the free alone: the latter to Christian freemen and slaves alike, that they should not be servile adherents to their party leaders at Corinth (1Co 3:21-22; Mat 23:8-10; 2Co 11:20); nor indeed slaves to men generally, so far as their condition admits. The external and internal conditions, so far as is attainable, should correspond, and the former be subservient to the latter (compare 1Co 7:21, 1Co 7:32-35).

JFB: 1Co 7:24 - -- Being chiefly careful of the footing on which he stands towards God rather than that towards men. This clause, "with God," limits the similar precept ...

Being chiefly careful of the footing on which he stands towards God rather than that towards men. This clause, "with God," limits the similar precept in 1Co 7:20. A man may cease to "abide in the calling wherein he was called," and yet not violate the precept here. If a man's calling be not favorable to his "abiding with God" (retaining holy fellowship with Him), he may use lawful means to change from it (compare Note, see on 1Co 7:21).

JFB: 1Co 7:25 - -- I have no express revelation from the Lord commanding it, but I give my judgment (opinion); namely, under the ordinary inspiration which accompanied t...

I have no express revelation from the Lord commanding it, but I give my judgment (opinion); namely, under the ordinary inspiration which accompanied the apostles in all their canonical writings (compare 1Co 7:40; 1Co 14:37; 1Th 4:15). The Lord inspires me in this case to give you only a recommendation, which you are free to adopt or reject--not a positive command. In the second case (1Co 7:10-11) it was a positive command; for the Lord had already made known His will (Mal 2:14-15; Mat 5:31-32). In the third case (1Co 7:12), the Old Testament commandment of God to put away strange wives (Ezr 10:3), Paul by the Spirit revokes.

JFB: 1Co 7:25 - -- (1Ti 1:13). He attributes his apostleship and the gifts accompanying it (including inspiration) to God's grace alone.

(1Ti 1:13). He attributes his apostleship and the gifts accompanying it (including inspiration) to God's grace alone.

JFB: 1Co 7:25 - -- In dispensing to you the inspired directions received by me from the Lord.

In dispensing to you the inspired directions received by me from the Lord.

JFB: 1Co 7:26 - -- "I consider."

"I consider."

JFB: 1Co 7:26 - -- Namely, "for a man so to be," that is, in the same state in which he is (1Co 7:27).

Namely, "for a man so to be," that is, in the same state in which he is (1Co 7:27).

JFB: 1Co 7:26 - -- By reason of.

By reason of.

JFB: 1Co 7:26 - -- The distresses to which believers were then beginning to be subjected, making the married state less desirable than the single; and which would prevai...

The distresses to which believers were then beginning to be subjected, making the married state less desirable than the single; and which would prevail throughout the world before the destruction of Jerusalem, according to Christ's prophecy (Mat 24:8-21; compare Act 11:28).

JFB: 1Co 7:27 - -- Illustrating the meaning of "so to be," 1Co 7:26. Neither the married (those "bound to a wife") nor the unmarried (those "loosed from a wife") are to ...

Illustrating the meaning of "so to be," 1Co 7:26. Neither the married (those "bound to a wife") nor the unmarried (those "loosed from a wife") are to "seek" a change of state (compare 1Co 7:20, 1Co 7:24).

JFB: 1Co 7:28 - -- Those who marry, he says, shall incur "trouble in the flesh" (that is, in their outward state, by reason of the present distress), not sin, which is t...

Those who marry, he says, shall incur "trouble in the flesh" (that is, in their outward state, by reason of the present distress), not sin, which is the trouble of the spirit.

JFB: 1Co 7:28 - -- The emphasis in the Greek is on "I." My motive in advising you so is, to "spare you" such trouble in the flesh. So ALFORD after CALVIN, BENGEL, and ot...

The emphasis in the Greek is on "I." My motive in advising you so is, to "spare you" such trouble in the flesh. So ALFORD after CALVIN, BENGEL, and others. ESTIUS from AUGUSTINE explains it, "I spare you further details of the inconveniences of matrimony, lest even the incontinent may at the peril of lust be deterred from matrimony: thus I have regard for your infirmity." The antithesis in the Greek of "I . . . you" and "such" favors the former.

JFB: 1Co 7:29 - -- A summing up of the whole, wherein he draws the practical inference from what precedes (1Co 15:50).

A summing up of the whole, wherein he draws the practical inference from what precedes (1Co 15:50).

JFB: 1Co 7:29 - -- The season (so the Greek) of this present dispensation up to the coming of the Lord (Rom 13:11). He uses the Greek expression which the Lord used in L...

The season (so the Greek) of this present dispensation up to the coming of the Lord (Rom 13:11). He uses the Greek expression which the Lord used in Luk 21:8; Mar 13:33.

JFB: 1Co 7:29 - -- Literally, "contracted."

Literally, "contracted."

JFB: 1Co 7:29 - -- The oldest manuscripts read, "The time (season) is shortened as to what remains, in order that both they," &c.; that is, the effect which the shorteni...

The oldest manuscripts read, "The time (season) is shortened as to what remains, in order that both they," &c.; that is, the effect which the shortening of the time ought to have is, "that for the remaining time (henceforth), both they," &c. The clause, "as to what remains," though in construction belonging to the previous clause, in sense belongs to the following. However, CYPRIAN and Vulgate support English Version.

JFB: 1Co 7:29 - -- We ought to consider nothing as our own in real or permanent possession.

We ought to consider nothing as our own in real or permanent possession.

JFB: 1Co 7:30 - -- (Compare 2Co 6:10).

(Compare 2Co 6:10).

JFB: 1Co 7:30 - -- (Compare Isa 24:1-2). Christ specifies as the condemning sin of the men of Sodom not merely their open profligacy, but that "they bought, they sold," ...

(Compare Isa 24:1-2). Christ specifies as the condemning sin of the men of Sodom not merely their open profligacy, but that "they bought, they sold," &c., as men whose all was in this world (Luk 17:28). "Possessed" in the Greek implies a holding fast of a possession; this the Christian will not do, for his "enduring substance" is elsewhere (Heb 10:34).

JFB: 1Co 7:31 - -- Not abusing it by an overmuch using of it. The meaning of "abusing" here is, not so much perverting, as using it to the full [BENGEL]. We are to use i...

Not abusing it by an overmuch using of it. The meaning of "abusing" here is, not so much perverting, as using it to the full [BENGEL]. We are to use it, "not to take our fill" of its pursuits as our chief aim (compare Luk 10:40-42). As the planets while turning on their own axis, yet revolve round the sun; so while we do our part in our own worldly sphere, God is to be the center of all our desires.

JFB: 1Co 7:31 - -- The present fleeting form. Compare Psa 39:6, "vain show"; Psa 73:20, "a dream"; Jam 4:14, "a vapor."

The present fleeting form. Compare Psa 39:6, "vain show"; Psa 73:20, "a dream"; Jam 4:14, "a vapor."

JFB: 1Co 7:31 - -- Not merely shall pass away, but is now actually passing away. The image is drawn from a shifting scene in a play represented on the stage (1Jo 2:17). ...

Not merely shall pass away, but is now actually passing away. The image is drawn from a shifting scene in a play represented on the stage (1Jo 2:17). Paul inculcates not so much the outward denial of earthly things, as the inward spirit whereby the married and the rich, as well as the unmarried and the poor, would be ready to sacrifice all for Christ's sake.

JFB: 1Co 7:32 - -- I would have you to be not merely "without trouble," but "without distracting cares" (so the Greek).

I would have you to be not merely "without trouble," but "without distracting cares" (so the Greek).

JFB: 1Co 7:32 - -- If he uses aright the advantages of his condition.

If he uses aright the advantages of his condition.

JFB: 1Co 7:34 - -- Not merely the unmarried and the married man differ in their respective duties, but also the wife and the virgin. Indeed a woman undergoes a greater c...

Not merely the unmarried and the married man differ in their respective duties, but also the wife and the virgin. Indeed a woman undergoes a greater change of condition than a man in contracting marriage.

JFB: 1Co 7:35 - -- Not to display my apostolic authority.

Not to display my apostolic authority.

JFB: 1Co 7:35 - -- Image from throwing a noose over an animal in hunting. Not that by hard injunctions I may entangle you with the fear of committing sin where there is ...

Image from throwing a noose over an animal in hunting. Not that by hard injunctions I may entangle you with the fear of committing sin where there is no sin.

JFB: 1Co 7:35 - -- Befitting under present circumstances.

Befitting under present circumstances.

JFB: 1Co 7:35 - -- Literally, "assiduously wait on"; sitting down to the duty. Compare Luk 10:39, Mary; Luk 2:37, "Anna . . . a widow, who departed not from the temple, ...

Literally, "assiduously wait on"; sitting down to the duty. Compare Luk 10:39, Mary; Luk 2:37, "Anna . . . a widow, who departed not from the temple, but served God with fastings and prayers night and day" (1Ti 5:5).

JFB: 1Co 7:35 - -- The same Greek as "cumbered" (Luk 10:40, Martha).

The same Greek as "cumbered" (Luk 10:40, Martha).

JFB: 1Co 7:36 - -- Is not treating his daughter well in leaving her unmarried beyond the flower of her age, and thus debarring her from the lawful gratification of her n...

Is not treating his daughter well in leaving her unmarried beyond the flower of her age, and thus debarring her from the lawful gratification of her natural feeling as a marriageable woman.

JFB: 1Co 7:36 - -- If the exigencies of the case require it; namely, regard to the feelings and welfare of his daughter. Opposed to "having no necessity" (1Co 7:37).

If the exigencies of the case require it; namely, regard to the feelings and welfare of his daughter. Opposed to "having no necessity" (1Co 7:37).

JFB: 1Co 7:36 - -- The daughter and her suitor.

The daughter and her suitor.

JFB: 1Co 7:37 - -- Not to be turned from his purpose by the obloquy of the world.

Not to be turned from his purpose by the obloquy of the world.

JFB: 1Co 7:37 - -- Arising from the natural inclinations of the daughter.

Arising from the natural inclinations of the daughter.

JFB: 1Co 7:37 - -- When, owing to his daughter's will not opposing his will, he has power to carry into effect his will or wish.

When, owing to his daughter's will not opposing his will, he has power to carry into effect his will or wish.

JFB: 1Co 7:37 - -- Determined.

Determined.

JFB: 1Co 7:38 - -- The oldest manuscripts have "his own virgin daughter."

The oldest manuscripts have "his own virgin daughter."

JFB: 1Co 7:38 - -- The oldest manuscripts have "and."

The oldest manuscripts have "and."

JFB: 1Co 7:39 - -- The oldest manuscripts omit "by the law."

The oldest manuscripts omit "by the law."

JFB: 1Co 7:39 - -- Let her marry only a Christian (2Co 6:14).

Let her marry only a Christian (2Co 6:14).

JFB: 1Co 7:40 - -- (1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:34-35).

JFB: 1Co 7:40 - -- "I also think"; just as you Corinthians and your teachers think much of your opinions, so I also give my opinion by inspiration; so in 1Co 7:25, "my j...

"I also think"; just as you Corinthians and your teachers think much of your opinions, so I also give my opinion by inspiration; so in 1Co 7:25, "my judgment" or opinion. Think does not imply doubt, but often a matter of well-grounded assurance (Joh 5:39).

Clarke: 1Co 7:6 - -- I speak this by permission, etc. - It was a constant custom of the more conscientious rabbins, to make a difference between the things which they en...

I speak this by permission, etc. - It was a constant custom of the more conscientious rabbins, to make a difference between the things which they enjoined on their own judgment, and those which they built on the authority of the law. Thus Rabbi Tancum: "The washing of hands before meat is in our own power; washing after meat is commanded."In relation to this point Dr. Lightfoot produces some examples from the Jewish writers: "The man is commanded concerning begetting and multiplying, but not the woman. And when does the man come under this command? From the age of sixteen or seventeen years; but, if he exceeds twenty years without marrying, behold he violates and renders an affirmative precept vain. The Gemara says: It is forbidden a man to be without a wife; because it is written, It is not good for man to be alone. And whosoever gives not himself to generation and multiplying is all one with a murderer: he is as though he diminished from the image of God, etc."We may understand the apostle here as saying that the directions already given were from his own judgment, and not from any Divine inspiration; and we may take it for granted that where he does not make this observation he is writing under the immediate afflatus of the Holy Spirit.

Clarke: 1Co 7:7 - -- For I would that all men, etc. - He wished that all that were then in the Church were, like him self, unmarried; but this was in reference to the ne...

For I would that all men, etc. - He wished that all that were then in the Church were, like him self, unmarried; but this was in reference to the necessities of the Church, or what he calls, 1Co 7:26, the present distress: for it never could be his wish that marriage should cease among men, and that human beings should no longer be propagated upon earth; nor could he wish that the Church of Christ should always be composed of single persons; this would have been equally absurd; but as the Church was then in straits and difficulties, it was much better for its single members not to encumber themselves with domestic embarrassments

Clarke: 1Co 7:7 - -- Every man hath his proper gift of God - Continence is a state that cannot be acquired by human art or industry; a man has it from God, or not at all...

Every man hath his proper gift of God - Continence is a state that cannot be acquired by human art or industry; a man has it from God, or not at all: and if he have it from God, he has it from him as the author of his nature; for where it does not exist naturally, it never can exist, but either by miraculous interference, which should never be expected, or by chirurgical operation, which is a shocking abomination in the sight of God. See the note on Mat 19:12 (note).

Clarke: 1Co 7:8 - -- The unmarried and widows - It is supposed that the apostle speaks here of men who had been married, in the word αγαμοι, but were now widowers...

The unmarried and widows - It is supposed that the apostle speaks here of men who had been married, in the word αγαμοι, but were now widowers; as he does of women who had been married, in the word χηραι, but were now widows. And when he says ὡς καγω, even as I, he means that he himself was a widower; for several of the ancients rank Paul among the married apostles.

Clarke: 1Co 7:9 - -- But if they cannot contain - If they find it inconvenient and uncomfortable to continue as widowers and widows, let them remarry

But if they cannot contain - If they find it inconvenient and uncomfortable to continue as widowers and widows, let them remarry

Clarke: 1Co 7:9 - -- It is better to marry than to burn - Bishop Pearce translates the original thus: For it is better to marry than to be made uneasy. Πυρουσθα...

It is better to marry than to burn - Bishop Pearce translates the original thus: For it is better to marry than to be made uneasy. Πυρουσθαι, says he, "signifies primarily to burn; but in a metaphorical sense, to be troubled, vexed, or made uneasy. So in 2Co 11:29 : Who is offended and I burn not, και ουκ εγω πυρουμαι, and I am not troubled. So in Terence, Uro hominem , is I vex him."It would be well to soften the sense of this word in reference to the subject of which the apostle speaks. He cannot mean burning with lust, no more than Virgil means so when he says, Aen. iv. ver. 68: Uritur infelix Dido , the unfortunate Dido is tormented; and in Eccl. ii. 68: Me tamen urit amor , love torments me. All this may be said with the strictest truth in such cases where the impure fire referred to above has no existence

A curious story, which certainly casts light on the phraseology of this place, is related by Dr. Lightfoot, from the tract Kiddushin, fol. 81. "Some captive women were brought to Nehardea, and disposed in the house and the upper room of Rabbi Amram. They took away the ladder (that the women might not get down, but stay there till they were ransomed.) As one of these captives passed by the window, the light of her great beauty shined into the house. Amram (captivated) set up the ladder; and when he was got to the middle of the steps (checked by his conscience) he stopped short, and with a loud voice cried out Fire! Fire! in the house of Amram! (This he did that, the neighbors flocking in, he might be obliged to desist from the evil affection which now prevailed in him.) The rabbins ran to him, and (seeing no fire) they said, Thou hast disgraced us. To which he replied: It is better that ye be disgraced in the house of Amram in this world, then that ye be disgraced by me in the world to come. He then adjured that evil affection to go out of him, and it went out as a pillar of Fire. Amram said: Thou art Fire, and I am Flesh; yet for all that I have prevailed against thee."From this story much instruction may be derived.

Clarke: 1Co 7:10 - -- I command, yet not I, but the Lord - I do not give my own private opinion or judgment in this case; for the Lord Jesus commands that man shall not p...

I command, yet not I, but the Lord - I do not give my own private opinion or judgment in this case; for the Lord Jesus commands that man shall not put asunder them whom God hath joined, Mat 5:32; Mat 19:6. And God has said the same, Gen 2:24. The following extracts will prove that the law among the Jews was very loose relative to the firmness of the marriage bond: -

A woman might put away or depart from her husband by giving this simple reason to the elders, who would give the following certificate

"In ____ day of ____ week, of ____ year, A., daughter of B., put away before us and said: My mother, or my brethren, deceived me, and wedded me or betrothed me, when I was a very young maid, to C., son of D.; but I now reveal my mind before you, that I will not have him.

Sometimes they parted with mutual consent, and this also was considered legal, as was also the marriage of the separated parties to others. Witness the following story: "A good man had a good wife; but because they had no children, they mutually put away each other. The good man married a bad (a heathen) wife, and she made him bad (a heathen); the good woman married a bad (a heathen) husband, and she made him good."Divorces were easily obtained among them, and they considered them the dissolving of the marriage bond; and, in consequence of these, the parties might remarry with others. This was contrary to the original institution of marriage, and is opposed both by our Lord and the apostle.

Clarke: 1Co 7:11 - -- But, and if she depart - He puts the case as probable, because it was frequent, but lays it under restrictions

But, and if she depart - He puts the case as probable, because it was frequent, but lays it under restrictions

Clarke: 1Co 7:11 - -- Let her remain unmarried - She departs at her own peril; but she must not marry another: she must either continue unmarried, or be reconciled to her...

Let her remain unmarried - She departs at her own peril; but she must not marry another: she must either continue unmarried, or be reconciled to her husband

Clarke: 1Co 7:11 - -- And let not the husband put away his wife - Divorces cannot be allowed but in the case of fornication: an act of this kind dissolves the marriage vo...

And let not the husband put away his wife - Divorces cannot be allowed but in the case of fornication: an act of this kind dissolves the marriage vow; but nothing else can. It is a fact that, among the Jews, the wife had just as much right to put away her husband as the husband had to put away his wife. As divorces were granted, it was right that each should have an equal power; for this served as a mutual check.

Clarke: 1Co 7:12 - -- But to the rest speak I, not the Lord - As if he had said: For what I have already spoken I have the testimony of the Lord by Moses, and of my own L...

But to the rest speak I, not the Lord - As if he had said: For what I have already spoken I have the testimony of the Lord by Moses, and of my own Lord and Master, Christ; but for the directions which I am now about to give there is no written testimony, and I deliver them now for the first time. These words do not intimate that the apostle was not now under the influences of the Divine Spirit; but, that there was nothing in the sacred writings which bore directly on this point

Clarke: 1Co 7:12 - -- If any brother - A Christian man, have a wife that believeth not, i.e. who is a heathen, not yet converted to the Christian faith, and she be please...

If any brother - A Christian man, have a wife that believeth not, i.e. who is a heathen, not yet converted to the Christian faith, and she be pleased to dwell with him, notwithstanding his turning Christian since their marriage, let him not put her away because she still continues in her heathen superstition.

Clarke: 1Co 7:13 - -- And the woman - Converted from heathenism to the Christian faith; which hath a husband, who still abides in heathenism; if he be pleased to dwell wi...

And the woman - Converted from heathenism to the Christian faith; which hath a husband, who still abides in heathenism; if he be pleased to dwell with her, notwithstanding she has become a Christian since their marriage; let her not leave him because he still continues a heathen.

Clarke: 1Co 7:14 - -- The unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife - Or rather, is to be reputed as sanctified on account of his wife; she being a Christian woman, a...

The unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife - Or rather, is to be reputed as sanctified on account of his wife; she being a Christian woman, and he, though a heathen, being by marriage one flesh with her: her sanctity, as far as it refers to outward things, may be considered as imputed to him so as to render their connection not unlawful. The case is the same when the wife is a heathen and the husband a Christian. The word sanctification here is to be applied much more to the Christian state than to any moral change in the persons; for ἁγιοι, saints, is a common term for Christians - those who were baptized into the faith of Christ; and as its corresponding term קדושים kedoshim signified all the Jews who were in the covenant of God by circumcision, the heathens in question were considered to be in this holy state by means of their connection with those who were by their Christian profession saints

Clarke: 1Co 7:14 - -- Else were your children unclean - If this kind of relative sanctification were not allowed, the children of these persons could not be received into...

Else were your children unclean - If this kind of relative sanctification were not allowed, the children of these persons could not be received into the Christian Church, nor enjoy any rights, or privileges as Christians; but the Church of God never scrupled to admit such children as members, just as well as she did those who had sprung from parents both of whom were Christians

The Jews considered a child as born out of holiness whose parents were not proselytes at the time of the birth, though afterwards they became proselytes. On the other hand, they considered the children of heathens born in holiness, provided the parents became proselytes before the birth. All the children of the heathens were reputed unclean by the Jews; and all their own children holy. - See Dr. Lightfoot. This shows clearly what the apostle’ s meaning is

If we consider the apostle as speaking of the children of heathens, we shall get a remarkable comment on this passage from Tertullian, who, in his treatise De Carne Christi, chaps. 37, 39, gives us a melancholy account of the height to which superstition and idolatry had arrived in his time among the Romans. "A child,"says he, "from its very conception, was dedicated to the idols and demons they worshipped. While pregnant, the mother had her body swathed round with bandages, prepared with idolatrous rites. The embryo they conceived to be under the inspection of the goddess Alemona, who nourished it in the womb. Nona and Decima took care that it should be born in the ninth or tenth month. Partula adjusted every thing relative to the labor; and Lucina ushered it into the light. During the week preceding the birth a table was spread for Juno; and on the last day certain persons were called together to mark the moment on which the Parcae, or Fates, had fixed its destiny. The first step the child set on the earth was consecrated to the goddess Statina; and, finally, some of the hair was cut off, or the whole head shaven, and the hair offered to some god or goddess through some public or private motive of devotion."He adds that "no child among the heathens was born in a state of purity; and it is not to be wondered at,"says he, "that demons possess them from their youth, seeing they were thus early dedicated to their service."In reference to this, he thinks, St. Paul speaks in the verse before us: The unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife - else were your children unclean; but now are they holy; i.e. "As the parents were converted to the Christian faith, the child comes into the world without these impure and unhallowed rites; and is from its infancy consecrated to the true God."

Clarke: 1Co 7:15 - -- But if the unbelieving, depart - Whether husband or wife: if such obstinately depart and utterly refuse all cohabitation, a brother or a sister - a ...

But if the unbelieving, depart - Whether husband or wife: if such obstinately depart and utterly refuse all cohabitation, a brother or a sister - a Christian man or woman, is not under bondage to any particular laws, so as to be prevented from remarrying. Such, probably, the law stood then; but it is not so now; for the marriage can only be dissolved by death, or by the ecclesiastical court. Even fornication or adultery does not dissolve the marriage contract; nor will the obstinate separation of any of the parties, however long continued, give the party abandoned authority to remarry. If the person have been beyond sea, and not heard of for seven years, it is presumed he may be dead; and marriage has been connived at in such cases. If there be no person to complain, it may be presumed that there is none injured. But I have known instances where even a marriage after seven years’ absence has been very unfortunate; the husband returning at the end of ten or twelve years, and to his utter distress finding his wife married to another man, and with issue of that marriage! There can be no safety in this case, unless there be absolute certainty of the death of the party in question

Clarke: 1Co 7:15 - -- God hath called us to peace - The refractory and disagreeing party should not be compelled to fulfill such matrimonial engagements as would produce ...

God hath called us to peace - The refractory and disagreeing party should not be compelled to fulfill such matrimonial engagements as would produce continual jarring and discord. At the same time each should take care that he give no cause for disagreements and separations, for the author of the Christian religion is the author of peace, and has called us to it.

Clarke: 1Co 7:16 - -- For what knowest thou, O wife - You that are Christians, and who have heathen partners, do not give them up because they are such, for you may becom...

For what knowest thou, O wife - You that are Christians, and who have heathen partners, do not give them up because they are such, for you may become the means of saving them unto eternal life. Bear your cross, and look up to God, and he may give your unbelieving husband or wife to your prayers.

Clarke: 1Co 7:17 - -- But as God hath distributed to every man, etc. - Let every man fulfill the duties of the state to which God in the course of his providence has call...

But as God hath distributed to every man, etc. - Let every man fulfill the duties of the state to which God in the course of his providence has called him

Clarke: 1Co 7:17 - -- So ordain I in all Churches - I do not lay on you a burden which others are not called to bear: this is the general rule which, by the authority of ...

So ordain I in all Churches - I do not lay on you a burden which others are not called to bear: this is the general rule which, by the authority of God, I impose on every Christian society.

Clarke: 1Co 7:18 - -- Is any man called being circumcised? - Is any man who was formerly a Jew converted to Christianity

Is any man called being circumcised? - Is any man who was formerly a Jew converted to Christianity

Clarke: 1Co 7:18 - -- Let him not become circumcised - Let him not endeavor to abolish the sign of the old covenant, which he bears in his flesh. The Greek words μη ε...

Let him not become circumcised - Let him not endeavor to abolish the sign of the old covenant, which he bears in his flesh. The Greek words μη επισπασθω, let him not draw over, are evidently an elliptical expression: the word την ακροβυστιαν, the fore-skin, being understood; which, indeed, is added by the Armenian and the Itala, and several of the Latin fathers. It is a fact that it was possible by the assistance of art to do this; and Celsus himself prescribes the mode, De Medic. vii. 25. By frequent stretching, the circumcised skin could be again so drawn over, as to prevent the ancient sign of circumcision from appearing. Some in their zeal against Judaism endeavored to abolish this sign of it in their flesh: it is most evidently against this that the apostle speaks. Many false Jews made use of this practice, that they might pass through heathen countries unobserved; otherwise, in frequenting the baths they would have been detected

Clarke: 1Co 7:18 - -- Let him not be circumcised - Let no man who, being a Gentile, has been converted to the Christian faith, submit to circumcision as something necessa...

Let him not be circumcised - Let no man who, being a Gentile, has been converted to the Christian faith, submit to circumcision as something necessary to his salvation.

Clarke: 1Co 7:19 - -- Circumcision is nothing - Circumcision itself, though commanded of God, is nothing of itself, it being only a sign of the justification which should...

Circumcision is nothing - Circumcision itself, though commanded of God, is nothing of itself, it being only a sign of the justification which should be afterwards received by faith. At present, neither it nor its opposite either hinders or furthers the work of grace; and keeping the commandments of God, from his love shed abroad in a believing heart, is the sum and substance of religion.

Clarke: 1Co 7:20 - -- Let every man abide in the same calling - As both the circumcised and uncircumcised, in Christ, have the same advantages, and to their believing the...

Let every man abide in the same calling - As both the circumcised and uncircumcised, in Christ, have the same advantages, and to their believing the same facilities; so any situation of life is equally friendly to the salvation of the soul, if a man be faithful to the grace he has received. Therefore, in all situations a Christian should be content, for all things work together for good to him who loves God.

Clarke: 1Co 7:21 - -- Art thou called being a servant? - Δουλος εκληθης, Art thou converted to Christ while thou art a slave - the property of another perso...

Art thou called being a servant? - Δουλος εκληθης, Art thou converted to Christ while thou art a slave - the property of another person, and bought with his money? care not for it - this will not injure thy Christian condition, but if thou canst obtain thy liberty - use it rather - prefer this state for the sake of freedom, and the temporal advantages connected with it.

Clarke: 1Co 7:22 - -- For he that is called - The man who, being a slave, is converted to the Christian faith, is the Lord’ s freeman; his condition as a slave does ...

For he that is called - The man who, being a slave, is converted to the Christian faith, is the Lord’ s freeman; his condition as a slave does not vitiate any of the privileges to which he is entitled as a Christian: on the other hand, all free men, who receive the grace of Christ, must consider themselves the slaves of the Lord, i.e. his real property, to be employed and disposed of according to his godly wisdom, who, notwithstanding their state of subjection, will find the service of their Master to be perfect freedom.

Clarke: 1Co 7:23 - -- Ye are bought with a price - As truly as your bodies have become the property of your masters, in consequence of his paying down a price for you; so...

Ye are bought with a price - As truly as your bodies have become the property of your masters, in consequence of his paying down a price for you; so sure you are now the Lord’ s property, in consequence of your being purchased by the blood of Christ

Some render this verse interrogatively: Are ye bought with a price from your slavery? Do not again become slaves of men. Never sell yourselves; prefer and retain your liberty now that ye have acquired it

In these verses the apostle shows that the Christian religion does not abolish our civil connections; in reference to them, where it finds us, there it leaves us. In whatever relation we stood before our embracing Christianity, there we stand still; our secular condition being no farther changed than as it may be affected by the amelioration of our moral character. But slavery, and all buying and selling of the bodies and souls of men, no matter what color or complexion, is a high offense against the holy and just God, and a gross and unprincipled attack on the liberty and rights of our fellow creatures.

Clarke: 1Co 7:24 - -- Let every man - abide with God - Let him live to God in whatsoever station he is placed by Providence. If he be a slave, God will be with him even i...

Let every man - abide with God - Let him live to God in whatsoever station he is placed by Providence. If he be a slave, God will be with him even in his slavery, if he be faithful to the grace which he has received. It is very likely that some of the slaves at Corinth, who had been converted to Christianity, had been led to think that their Christian privileges absolved them from the necessity of continuing slaves; or, at least, brought them on a level with their Christian masters. A spirit of this kind might have soon led to confusion and insubordination, and brought scandals into the Church. It was therefore a very proper subject for the apostle to interfere in; and to his authority, the persons concerned would doubtless respectfully bow.

Clarke: 1Co 7:25 - -- Now concerning virgins - This was another subject on which the Church at Corinth had asked the advice of the apostle. The word παρθενος, vi...

Now concerning virgins - This was another subject on which the Church at Corinth had asked the advice of the apostle. The word παρθενος, virgin, we take to signify a pure, unmarried young woman; but it is evident that the word in this place means young unmarried persons of either sex, as appears from 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:27, 1Co 7:32-34, and from Rev 14:4. The word παρθενος, virgin, is frequently applied to men as well as to women. See Suidas, under the word Αβελ· οὑτος παρθενος και δι καιος ὑπηρχε, He (Abel) was a virgin, and a righteous man. In 1Co 7:36 the word is supposed to mean the state of virginity or celibacy, and very probable reasons are assigned for it; and it is evident that persons of either sex in a state of celibacy are the persons intended

Clarke: 1Co 7:25 - -- I have no commandment of the Lord - There is nothing in the sacred writings that directly touches this point

I have no commandment of the Lord - There is nothing in the sacred writings that directly touches this point

Clarke: 1Co 7:25 - -- Yet I give my judgment - As every way equal to such commandments had there been any, seeing I have received the teaching of his own Spirit, and have...

Yet I give my judgment - As every way equal to such commandments had there been any, seeing I have received the teaching of his own Spirit, and have obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful to this heavenly gift, so that it abides with me to lead me into all truth. In this way I think the apostle’ s words may be safely understood.

Clarke: 1Co 7:26 - -- This is good for the present distress - There was no period in the heathen times when the Church was not under persecutions and afflictions; on some...

This is good for the present distress - There was no period in the heathen times when the Church was not under persecutions and afflictions; on some occasions these were more oppressive than at others

The word αναγκη signifies, necessity, distress, tribulation, and calamity; as it does in Luk 21:23; 2Co 6:4; 2Co 12:10. In such times, when the people of God had no certain dwelling-place, when they were lying at the mercy of their enemies without any protection from the state - the state itself often among the persecutors - he who had a family to care for, would find himself in very embarrassed circumstances, as it would be much more easy to provide for his personal safety than to have the care of a wife and children. On this account it was much better for unmarried persons to continue for the present in their celibacy.

Clarke: 1Co 7:27 - -- Art thou bound unto a wife? - i.e. Married; for the marriage contract was considered in the light of a bond

Art thou bound unto a wife? - i.e. Married; for the marriage contract was considered in the light of a bond

Clarke: 1Co 7:27 - -- Seek not to be loosed - Neither regret your circumstances, notwithstanding the present distress, nor seek on this account for a dissolution of the m...

Seek not to be loosed - Neither regret your circumstances, notwithstanding the present distress, nor seek on this account for a dissolution of the marriage contract. But if thou art under no matrimonial engagements, do not for the present enter into any.

Clarke: 1Co 7:28 - -- But, and if thou marry - As there is no law against this, even in the present distress, thou hast not sinned, because there is no law against this; ...

But, and if thou marry - As there is no law against this, even in the present distress, thou hast not sinned, because there is no law against this; and it is only on account of prudential reasons that I give this advice

Clarke: 1Co 7:28 - -- And if a virgin marry - Both the man and the woman have equal privileges in this case; either of them may marry without sin. It is probable, as ther...

And if a virgin marry - Both the man and the woman have equal privileges in this case; either of them may marry without sin. It is probable, as there were many sects and parties in Corinth, that there were among them those who forbade to marry, 1Ti 4:3, and who might have maintained other doctrines of devils besides. These persons, or such doctrines, the apostle has in view when he says, They may marry and yet not sin

Clarke: 1Co 7:28 - -- Trouble in the flesh - From the simple circumstance of the incumbrance of a family while under persecution; because of the difficulty of providing f...

Trouble in the flesh - From the simple circumstance of the incumbrance of a family while under persecution; because of the difficulty of providing for its comfort and safety while flying before the face of persecution

Clarke: 1Co 7:28 - -- But I spare you - The evil is coming; but I will not press upon you the observance of a prudential caution, which you might deem too heavy a cross.

But I spare you - The evil is coming; but I will not press upon you the observance of a prudential caution, which you might deem too heavy a cross.

Clarke: 1Co 7:29 - -- The time is short - These persecutions and distresses are at the door, and life itself will soon be run out. Even then Nero was plotting those griev...

The time is short - These persecutions and distresses are at the door, and life itself will soon be run out. Even then Nero was plotting those grievous persecutions with which he not only afflicted, but devastated the Church of Christ

Clarke: 1Co 7:29 - -- They that have wives - Let none begin to think of any comfortable settlement for his family, let him sit loose to all earthly concerns, and stand re...

They that have wives - Let none begin to think of any comfortable settlement for his family, let him sit loose to all earthly concerns, and stand ready prepared to escape for his life, or meet death, as the providence of God may permit. The husband will be dragged from the side of his wife to appear before the magistrates, and be required either to abjure Christ or die

Linquenda tellus, et domus, et placen

Uxor; neque harum, quas colis, arboru

Te, praeter invisas cupressos

Ulla brevem dominum sequetur

Hor. Odar. lib. ii., Od. xiv., v. 22

Your pleasing consort must be left

And you, of house and lands bereft

Must to the shades descend

The cypress only, hated tree

Of all thy much-loved groves, shall thee

Its short-lived lord, attend

Francis

Poor heathenism! thou couldst give but cold comfort in such circumstances as these: and infidelity, thy younger brother, is no better provided than thou.

Clarke: 1Co 7:30 - -- They that weep, etc. - There will shortly be such a complete system of distress and confusion that private sorrows and private joys will be absorbed...

They that weep, etc. - There will shortly be such a complete system of distress and confusion that private sorrows and private joys will be absorbed in the weightier and more oppressive public evils: yet, let every man still continue in his calling, let him buy, and sell, and traffic, as usual; though in a short time, either by the coming persecution or the levelling hand of death, he that had earthly property will be brought into the same circumstances with him who had none.

Clarke: 1Co 7:31 - -- And they that use this world - Let them who have earthly property or employments discharge conscientiously their duties, from a conviction of the in...

And they that use this world - Let them who have earthly property or employments discharge conscientiously their duties, from a conviction of the instability of earthly things. Make a right use of every thing, and pervert nothing from its use. To use a thing is to employ it properly in order to accomplish the end to which it refers. To abuse a thing signifies to pervert it from that use. Pass through things temporal, so as not to lose those which are eternal

Clarke: 1Co 7:31 - -- For the fashion of this world - Το σχημα του κοσμον τουτου signifies properly the present state or constitution of things; t...

For the fashion of this world - Το σχημα του κοσμον τουτου signifies properly the present state or constitution of things; the frame of the world, that is, the world itself. But often the term κοσμος, world, is taken to signify the Jewish state and polity; the destruction of this was then at hand, and this the Holy Spirit might then signify to the apostle.

Clarke: 1Co 7:32 - -- Without carefulness - Though all these things will shortly come to pass, yet do not be anxious about them. Every occurrence is under the direction a...

Without carefulness - Though all these things will shortly come to pass, yet do not be anxious about them. Every occurrence is under the direction and management of God. The wrath of man shall praise him, and the remainder of it he shall restrain, and none can harm you if ye be followers of that which is good. We should all take the advice of the poet: -

"With patient mind thy course of duty run

God nothing does, nor suffers to be done

But thou wouldst do thyself, couldst thou but se

The end of all events as well as He.

Byrom

Clarke: 1Co 7:32 - -- He that is unmarried careth for the things that belong to the Lord - He has nothing to do with a family, and therefore can give his whole time to th...

He that is unmarried careth for the things that belong to the Lord - He has nothing to do with a family, and therefore can give his whole time to the service of his Maker, having him alone to please.

Clarke: 1Co 7:33 - -- But he that is married - He has a family to provide for, and his wife to please, as well as to fulfill his duty to God, and attend to the concerns o...

But he that is married - He has a family to provide for, and his wife to please, as well as to fulfill his duty to God, and attend to the concerns of his own soul. The single man has nothing to attend to but what concerns his own salvation: the married man has all this to attend to, and besides to provide for his wife and family, and take care of their eternal interests also. The single man has very little trouble comparatively; the married man has a great deal. The single man is an atom in society; the married man is a small community in himself. The former is the centre of his own existence, and lives for himself alone; the latter is diffused abroad, makes a much more important part of the body social, and provides both for its support and continuance. The single man lives for and does good to himself only; the married man lives both for himself and the public. Both the state and the Church of Christ are dependent on the married man, as from him under God the one has subjects, the other members; while the single man is but an individual in either, and by and by will cease from both, and having no posterity is lost to the public for ever. The married man, therefore, far from being in a state of inferiority to the single man, is beyond him out of the limits of comparison. He can do all the good the other can do, though perhaps sometimes in a different way; and he can do ten thousand goods that the other cannot possibly do. And therefore both himself and his state are to be preferred infinitely before those of the other. Nor could the apostle have meant any thing less; only for the present distress he gave his opinion that it was best for those who were single to continue so. And who does not see the propriety of the advice?

Clarke: 1Co 7:34 - -- There is a difference also between a wife and a virgin - That is: There is this difference between a married and an unmarried woman. The unmarried c...

There is a difference also between a wife and a virgin - That is: There is this difference between a married and an unmarried woman. The unmarried careth (only) for the things of the Lord, having no domestic duties to perform. That she may be holy - separated to Divine employments, both in body and spirit. Whereas she that is married careth (also) for the things of the world, how she may please her husband, having many domestic duties to fulfill, her husband being obliged to leave to her the care of the family, and all other domestic concerns

On this verse there is a profusion of various readings in MSS., versions, and fathers, for which I must refer to Griesbach, as it would be impossible to introduce them here so as to make them look like sense.

Clarke: 1Co 7:35 - -- This I speak for your own profit - The advices belong to yourselves alone, because of the peculiar circumstances in which you are placed. Nothing sp...

This I speak for your own profit - The advices belong to yourselves alone, because of the peculiar circumstances in which you are placed. Nothing spoken here was ever designed to be of general application; it concerned the Church at Corinth alone, or Churches in similar circumstances

Clarke: 1Co 7:35 - -- Not that I may cast a snare upon you - Ουχ ἱνα βροχον ὑμιν επιβαλω - Here is a manifest allusion to the Retiarius among...

Not that I may cast a snare upon you - Ουχ ἱνα βροχον ὑμιν επιβαλω - Here is a manifest allusion to the Retiarius among the Romans, who carried a small casting net, which he endeavored to throw over the head of his adversary and thus entangle him. Or to a similar custom among the Persians, who made use of a noose called the camand ; which they employed in the same way. One of these lies before me; it is a strong silken cord, one end of which is a loop to be held in the hand, and the rest is in the form of a common snare or noose, which, catching hold of any thing, tightens in proportion as it is pulled by the hand that holds the loop

The apostle, therefore, intimates that what he says was not intended absolutely to bind them, but to show them the propriety of following an advice which in the present case would be helpful to them in their religious connections, that they might attend upon the Lord without distraction, which they could not do in times of persecution, when, in addition to their own personal safety, they had a wife and children to care for

Clarke: 1Co 7:35 - -- For that which is comely, and that ye may attend upon the Lord without distraction, - The original αλλα προς το ευσχημον και ...

For that which is comely, and that ye may attend upon the Lord without distraction, - The original αλλα προς το ευσχημον και ευπροσεδρον τῳ Κυριῳ απερισπαστως, of which our version is only a paraphrase, is thus translated by Bishop Pearson: But for the sake of decency, and of attending more easily upon the Lord without distraction. This is much more literal than ours.

Clarke: 1Co 7:36 - -- Uncomely towards his virgin - Different meanings have been assigned to this verse; I shall mention three of the principal 1.    "In t...

Uncomely towards his virgin - Different meanings have been assigned to this verse; I shall mention three of the principal

1.    "In those early times, both among the Hebrews and Christians, the daughters were wholly in the power of the father, so that he might give or not give them in marriage as he chose; and might bind them to perpetual celibacy if he thought proper; and to this case the apostle alludes. If the father had devoted his daughter to perpetual virginity, and he afterwards found that she had fixed her affections upon a person whom she was strongly inclined to marry, and was now getting past the prime of life; he, seeing from his daughter’ s circumstances that it would be wrong to force her to continue in her state of celibacy; though he had determined before to keep her single, yet he might in this case alter his purpose without sin, and let her and her suitor marry.

2.    "The whole verse and its context speaks of young women dedicated to the service of God, who were called παρθενοι, virgins, in the primitive Church. And a case is put here, ‘ that circumstances might occur to render the breach of even a vow of this kind necessary, and so no sin be committed.’

3.    "The apostle by παρθενος, does not mean a virgin, but the state of virginity or celibacy, whether in man or woman."Both Mr. Locke and Dr. Whitby are of this opinion, and the latter reasons on it thus: -

It is generally supposed that these three verses relate to virgins under the power of parents and guardians and the usual inference is, that children are to be disposed of in marriage by the parents, guardians, etc. Now this may be true, but it has no foundation in the text, for τηρειν την ἑαυτου παρθενον is not to keep his daughter’ s, but his own virginity, or rather his purpose of virginity; for, as Phavorinus says, He is called a virgin who freely gives himself up to the Lord, renouncing matrimony, and preferring a life spent in continency. And that this must be the true import of these words appears from this consideration, that this depends upon the purpose of his own heart, and the power he has over his own will, and the no necessity arising from himself to change this purpose. Whereas the keeping a daughter unmarried depends not on these conditions on her father’ s part but on her own; for, let her have a necessity, and surely the apostle would not advise the father to keep her a virgin, because he had determined so to do; nor could there be any doubt whether the father had power over his own will or not, when no necessity lay upon him to betroth his virgin. The Greek runs to this sense: if he had stood already firm in his heart, finding no necessity, viz. to change his purpose; and hath power over his own will, not to marry; finding himself able to persist in the resolution he had made to keep his virginity, he does well to continue a virgin: and then the phrase, if any man think he behaves himself unseemly towards his virgin, if it be over-aged, and thinks he ought rather to join in marriage, refers to the opinions both of Jews and Gentiles that all ought to marry. The Jews say that the time of marriage is from 16 or 17 to 20; while some of the Gentiles specify from 30 to 35. If any think thus, says the apostle, let them do what they will, they sin not: let them marry. And then he concludes with those words applied to both cases: so then, both he that marries doeth well, and he that marries not, doeth better

This last opinion seems to be the true sense of the apostle

It may be necessary to make a few general observations on these verses, summing up what has been said

1. Παρθενος here should be considered as implying not a virgin, but the state of virginity or celibacy

2. Ὑπερακμος, over-aged, must refer to the passing of that time in which both the laws and customs of Jews and Gentiles required men to marry. See above, and see the note on 1Co 7:6

3. Και οὑτως οφειλει γινεσθαι, And need so require; or, if there appear to be a necessity; is to be understood of any particular change in his circumstances or in his feelings; or, that he finds, from the law and custom in the case, that it is a scandal for him not to marry; then let him do what he wills or purposes

4.    Instead of γαμειτωσαν, let Them marry, I think γαμειτω, let Him marry, is the true reading, and agrees best with the context. This reading is supported by D*EFG, Syriac, in the Arabic, Slavonic, one of the Itala, and St. Augustine. Si nubat , if he marry, is the reading of the Vulgate, several copies of the Itala, Ambrose, Jerome, Ambrosiaster, Sedulius, and Bede. This reading is nearly of the same import with the other: Let him do what he willeth, he sinneth not, let him marry; or, he sinneth not if he marry

5.    The whole of the 37th verse relates to the purpose that the man has formed; and the strength that he has to keep his purpose of perpetual celibacy, being under no necessity to change that purpose

6.    Instead of ὁ εκγαμιζων, he who giveth her in marriage, I purpose to read ὁ γαμιζων, he who marrieth, which is the reading of the Codex Alexandrinus, the Codex Vaticanus, No. 1209, and of some others: with Clement, Methodius, and Basil. Την ἑαυτου παρθενον, his own virgin, is added after the above, by several very ancient and reputable MSS, as also by the Syriac, Armenian, Vulgate, Ethiopic, Clement, Basil, Optatus, and others; but it seems so much like a gloss, that Griesbach has not made it even a candidate for a place in the text. He then who marrieth, though previously intending perpetual virginity, doeth well; as this is agreeable to laws both Divine and human: and he who marrieth not, doeth better, because of the present distress. See 1Co 7:26.

Clarke: 1Co 7:39 - -- The wife is bound by the law - This seems to be spoken in answer to some other question of the Corinthians to this effect: "May a woman remarry whos...

The wife is bound by the law - This seems to be spoken in answer to some other question of the Corinthians to this effect: "May a woman remarry whose husband is dead, or who has abandoned her?"To which he replies, in general, That as long as her husband is living the law binds her to him alone; but, if the husband die, she is free to remarry, but only in the Lord; that is she must not marry a heathen nor an irreligious man; and she should not only marry a genuine Christian, but one of her own religious sentiments; for, in reference to domestic peace, much depends on this.

Clarke: 1Co 7:40 - -- But she is happier if she so abide - If she continue in her widowhood because of the present distress; for this must always be taken in, that consis...

But she is happier if she so abide - If she continue in her widowhood because of the present distress; for this must always be taken in, that consistency in the apostle’ s reasoning may be preserved. If this were not understood, how could St. Paul tell the widow that it would be more happy for her to continue in her widowhood than to remarry? She who had tried both the state of celibacy and the state of marriage could certainly best tell which was most for her comfort; and he could not tell any thing but by an express revelation from heaven, relative to the future state of any widow: it is certain that he can never be understood as speaking in general, as there are multitudes of persons abundantly more happy in their married than in their single state; and there are many widows also much more happy in their second marriage than they have been in their first

Clarke: 1Co 7:40 - -- After my judgment - According to the view I have of the subject, which view I take by the light of the Divine Spirit, who shows me the tribulations ...

After my judgment - According to the view I have of the subject, which view I take by the light of the Divine Spirit, who shows me the tribulations which are coming on the Church. But, says he, 1Co 7:28 : I spare you - I will not be more explicit concerning coming evils, as I wish to save you from all forebodings which bring torment

Clarke: 1Co 7:40 - -- I think - I have the Spirit of God - Δοκω δε κᾳγω Πνευμα Θεου εχειν might be translated, I am Certain that I have the S...

I think - I have the Spirit of God - Δοκω δε κᾳγω Πνευμα Θεου εχειν might be translated, I am Certain that I have the Spirit of God. This sense of δοκειν (which we translate to seem, to think, to appear, etc.) I have noticed in another part of this work. Ulpian, on Demosthen. Olynth. 1, says, Το δοκειν ου παντως επι αμφιβολου ταττουσιν οἱ παλαιοι αλλα πολλακις και επι του αληθευειν· The word δοκειν is used by the ancients, not always to express what is Doubtful, but often to express what is True and Certain. - See Bp. Pearce. The apostle cannot be understood as expressing any doubt of his being under the inspiration of the Divine Spirit, as this would have defeated his object in giving the above advices; for if they were not dictated by the Spirit of God, can it be supposed that, in the face of apparent self-interest, and the prevalence of strong passions, they could have been expected to have become rules of conduct to this people? They must have understood him as asserting that he had the direction of the Spirit of God in giving those opinions, else they could not be expected to obey

1.    In the preceding chapter we have met with subjects both of difficulty and importance. As to the difficulties, it is hoped that they have been so generally considered in the notes that few or none of them remain; and on the subjects of peculiar importance much time has been spent, in order to impress them on the mind of the reader. The delicacy of some of them would not admit of greater plainness; and in a few instances I have been obliged to wrap the meaning in a foreign language

2.    On the important subject of marriage I have said what I believe to be true, and scruple not to say that it is the most useful state in which - the human being can be placed; and consequently that in which most honor may be brought to God. I have listened with much attention for the better part of half a century to the arguments against marriage and in favor of celibacy; and I have had the opportunity of being acquainted with many who endeavored to exemplify their own doctrine. But I have seen an end of all their perfection: neither the world nor the Church are under any obligations to them: they either married when they could do it to their mind and convenience; or, continuing in their celibacy, they lived a comparatively useless life; and died as they should, unregretted. The doctrine is not only dangerous but anti-scriptural: and I hope I have sufficiently vindicated Paul from being its patron or supporter

3.    While I contend for the superior excellence of the marriage state, I hope I shall not be understood to be the apologist of indiscriminate marriages - no, many of them are blamable in a very high degree. Instead of consulting common sense and propriety, childish affections, brutish passions, or the love of money are the motives on which many of them have been contracted. Such marriages are miserable; must be so, and should not be otherwise; and superficial people looking at these form an estimate of the state itself, and then indulge themselves in exclaiming against an ordinance of God, either perverted by themselves or the equally foolish persons who are the subjects of their animadversion. That genuine Christians can never be so useful in any state as that of marriage I am fully convinced; but to be happy, the marriage must be in the Lord. When believers match with unbelievers, generally pars sincera trahitur ; the good becomes perverted; and Satan has his triumph when he has got an immortal soul out of the Church of Christ into his own synagogue. But who among young people will lay this to heart? And how few among young men and young women will not sell their Savior and his people for a husband or a wife

4.    The doctrine of second marriages has been long a subject of controversy in the Church. The Scriptures, properly understood, have not only nothing against them, but much for them. And in this chapter St. Paul, in the most pointed manner, admits of them. A widow may marry again, only let it be in the Lord; and a widower has certainly the same privilege

5.    The conversion which the Scripture requires, though it makes a most essential change in our souls in reference to God, and in our works in reference both to God and man, makes none in our civil state: even if a man is called, i.e. converted in a state of slavery, he does not gain his manumission in consequence of his conversion; he stands in the same relation both to the state and to his fellows that he stood in before; and is not to assume any civil rights or privileges in consequence of the conversion of his soul to God. The apostle decides the matter in this chapter, and orders that every man should abide in the calling wherein he is called

6.    From the 20th to the 23rd verse the apostle refers to the state of slavery among the Greeks; and from what he says we find that even among the slaves there were Christian converts, to whom, though he recommends submission and contentment, yet he intimates that if they could get their freedom they should prefer it; and he strongly charges those that were free not to become again the slaves of men, 1Co 7:23; from which we learn that a man might dispose of his own liberty, which, in a Christian, would be a disgrace to his redemption by Christ. The word ελευθερος, which we translate freeman, means properly freed-man, one who had been a slave but had regained his liberty. It is the same as libertus among the Romans, one who was manumitted. The manumission was performed three several ways

1.    The consent of the master that the slave should have his name entered in the census; or public register of the citizens

2.    The slave was led before the praetor, and the magistrate laid his wand, called vindicta, on his head, and declared him free

3.    By testament or will, the master bequeathing to the slave his freedom. The manner in which the second mode of manumission was performed is curious. The praetor having laid the rod vindicta upon the slave’ s head, pronounced these words, Dico eum liberum esse more Quiritum , "I pronounce him free according to the custom of the Romans."This done he gave the rod to the lictor, or serjeant, who struck the slave with it upon the head, and afterwards with the hand upon the face and back. The head also of the slave was shaven, and a cup given him by his master as a token of freedom, and the notary entered the name of the new freed-man in the public register, with the reasons of his manumission: it was customary also to give him another surname

7.    Among our Saxon ancestors, and also after the conquest, there was a species of slavery: all the villani were slaves to their respective lords, and each was bound to serve him in a great variety of ways. There is a profusion of curious examples of this in the ancient record preserved in the bishop’ s auditor’ s office in the cathedral of Durham, commonly known by the name of the Bolden Book . This record has been lately printed under the direction of his majesty’ s commissioners on the public records of the kingdom, in the supplement to Domesday Book

8.    Among our Saxon ancestors manumissions were granted on various accounts

1.    A person might, if able, purchase his own freedom

2.    One man might purchase the freedom of another

3.    Manumissions were granted to procure by their merit the salvation of departed souls

4.    Persons were manumitted also in order to be consecrated to the service of God. These manumissions were usually recorded in some holybook, especially in copies of the four Evangelists, which, being preserved in the libraries of abbeys, etc., were a continual record, and might at all convenient times be consulted. Several entries of these manumissions exist in a MS. of the four Evangelists, s. 4, 14, in the library of Corpus Christi or Bennet college, Cambridge

I shall produce a specimen of one of the several kinds mentioned above, giving the original only of the first; and of the others, verbal translations

1.    The certificate of a man’ s having purchased his own freedom

"Here is witnessed, in this book of Christ, that Aelfwig the Red hath redeemed himself from Abbot Aelfsig, and the whole convent, with one pound. And this is witnessed by the whole convent at Bath

May Christ strike him blin

Who this writing perverts.

This is a usual execration at the end of these forms, and is in rhyme in the original

2.    Certificate of one having purchased the liberty of another

"Here is witnessed, in this book of Christ, that Aedric Atford has redeemed Saegyfa, his daughter, from the Abbot Aelfsig, and from the convent of Bath, to be for ever free, and all her posterity.

3.    Certificate of redemption in behalf of one departed

"Here is witnessed, in this book of Christ, that Aelfric Scot and Aegelric Scot are manumitted for the soul of Abbot Aelfsig, to perpetual liberty. This was done with the testimony of the whole convent.

4.    Certificate of persons manumitted to be devoted to the service of God

"Here is witnessed, in this book of Christ, that John bought Gunnilda the daughter of Thurkill, from Goda, widow of Leafenath, with half a pound. With the testimony of the whole convent

May Christ strike him blin

Who this writing perverts

And he has dedicated her to Christ and St. Peter, in behalf of his mother’ s soul.

9.    When a man was made free, it was either in the church or at some public meeting: the sheriff of the county took him by the right hand and proclaimed him a freeman, and showed him the open door and the public highway, intimating that he was free to go whithersoever he pleased, and then gave him the arms of a freeman, viz. a spear and a sword. In some cases the man was to pay thirty pence to his master of hide money, intimating that he was no longer under restraint, chastisement, or correction. From which it appears that our ancestors were in the habit of flogging their slaves. See the laws of Ina, c. 24, 39; of Wm. the Conqueror, c. 65; and of Hen. I. c. 78

10.    Among the Gentoos the manumission of a slave was as follows: The slave took a pitcher, filled it with water, and put therein berenge-arook (rice that had been cleansed without boiling) and flowers of doob, (a kind of small salad), and taking the pitcher on his shoulder he stands near his master; the master then puts the pitcher on the slave’ s head, breaks it so that the water, rice, flowers, and doob that were in the pitcher may fall on the slave’ s body: when this is done the master thrice pronounces, I have made thee free; then the slave steps forward a few paces towards the east, and then the manumission is complete. See Code of Gentoo laws, chap. 8: sec. 2, page 160. It is evident that the whole of this ceremony is emblematical

1.    The pitcher represents the confined, servile state of the slave

2.    The articles contained in it, his exclusion while in a state of slavery from the grand benefits and comforts of life

3.    The water contained in the pitcher, his exclusion from the refreshing influences of heaven; for slaves were not permitted to take part in the ordinances of religion

4.    The clean, unboiled rice, his incapacity to have secular possessions; for slaves were not permitted to possess lands either by inheritance or purchase: a slave could sow no seed for himself, and consequently have no legal claim on support from this staff of life

5.    The doob or salad shut up, his being without relish for that state of being which was rendered insupportable to him by his thraldom

6.    The breaking of the pitcher, his manumission and enjoyment of liberty: being as free to go whithersoever he would as the water was to run, being now disengaged from the pitcher

7.    The shedding of the water, rice, flower, etc., over his body, his privilege of enjoying and possessing every heavenly and earthly good

8.    His stepping towards the east, his acknowledgment to the supreme Being, the fountain of light and life, (of whom the sun was the emblem), for his enlargement; and his eagerness to possess the light and comfort of that new state of happiness into which he was now brought in consequence of his manumission

11.    The description that Dr. John Taylor gives, in his Elements of Civil Law, of the state of slaves among the ancients, will nearly suit with their state among our ancestors, though scarcely as bad as their state in the West Indies. "They were held among the Romans, pro nullis; pro mortuis; pro quadrupedibus : - for no men; for dead men; for beasts: nay, were in a much worse state than any cattle whatever. They had no head in the state, no name, no tribe or register. They were not capable of being injured, nor could they take by purchase or descent, had no heirs, and could make no will. Exclusive of what was called their peculium, whatever they acquired was their master’ s; they could neither plead nor be impleaded; but were entirely excluded from all civil concerns; were not entitled to the rights of matrimony, and therefore had no relief in case of adultery; nor were they proper objects of cognation or affinity. They might be sold, transferred, or pawned, like other goods or personal estate; for goods they were, and such were they esteemed. They might be tortured for evidence, punished at the discretion of their lord, and even put to death, by his authority. They were laid under several other civil incapacities, too tedious to mention."When all this is considered, we may at once see the horrible evil of slavery, and wonder at the grace which could render them happy and contented in this situation see the preceding chapter, 1Co 7:20-22. And yet we need not be surprised that the apostle should say to those who were free or freed, Ye are bought with a price; do not become slaves of men

12.    I have entered the more particularly into this subject, because it, or allusions to it, are frequently occurring in the New Testament, and I speak of it here once for all. And, to conclude, I here register my testimony against the unprincipled, inhuman, anti-Christian, and diabolical slave-trade, with all its authors, promoters, abettors, and sacrilegious gains; as well as against the great devil, the father of it and them.

Calvin: 1Co 7:6 - -- 6.By permission That they might not, by taking their stand upon a precept of the kind that he had prescribed, loosen unduly the restraints of lust, 3...

6.By permission That they might not, by taking their stand upon a precept of the kind that he had prescribed, loosen unduly the restraints of lust, 380 he adds a limitation — that he had written these things on account of their infirmity — that they may bear in mind that marriage is a remedy for unchastity, lest they should inordinately abuse the advantage of it, so as to gratify their desire by every means; nay more, without measure or modesty. He has it also in view to meet the cavils of the wicked, that no one might have it in his power to object in this way: “What! are you afraid that husbands and wives will not of their own accord be sufficiently inclined to carnal delight that you prompt them to it?” For even the Papists, those little saints, 381 are offended with this doctrine, and would gladly have a contest with Paul, on the ground of his keeping married persons in mutual cohabitation, and not allowing them to turn aside to a life of celibacy. He assigns, then, a reason for his doctrine, and declares, that he had not recommended connubial intercourse to married persons with the view of alluring them to delight, or as though he took pleasure in commanding it, but had considered what was required by the infirmity of those that he is addressing.

Foolish zealots 382 for celibacy make a wrong use of both clauses of this verse; for as Paul says that he speaks by permission, they infer from this, that there is therefore something wrong in conjugal intercourse, for where there is need of pardon, 383 there must be sin. Farther, from his saying that he speaks not by commandment, they infer, that it is, therefore, a holier thing to leave off the use of marriage and turn to celibacy. To the former, I answer, that as there is, I acknowledge, an inordinate excess in all human affections, I do not deny that there is as to this matter an irregularity, (ἀταξία,) 384 which, I allow, is vicious. 385 Nay more, this affection, I allow, is beyond others violent, and next to brutish. But, on the other hand, I also maintain, that whatever there is of vice or baseness, is so covered over by the honorableness of marriage, that it ceases to be a vice, or at least is not reckoned a fault by God, as Augustine elegantly discourses in his book “On the advantage of Marriage,” and frequently in other places. You may then take it briefly thus: 386 conjugal intercourse is a thing that is pure, honorable and holy, because it is a pure institution of God: the immoderate desire with which persons burn is a fault arising from the corruption of nature; but in the case of believers marriage is a veil, by which that fault is covered over, so that it no longer appears in the sight of God. To the second I answer: as the term commandment is properly applied to those things which relate to the duties of righteousness, and things in themselves pleasing to God, Paul on this account says that he does not speak by commandment He has, however, sufficiently shown previously, that the remedy, which he had enjoined, must necessarily be made use of.

Calvin: 1Co 7:7 - -- 7.For I should wish, that all This is connected with the exposition of the foregoing statement; for he does not fail to intimate, what is the more co...

7.For I should wish, that all This is connected with the exposition of the foregoing statement; for he does not fail to intimate, what is the more convenient way, but he wishes every one to consider what has been given him. 387 Why, then, has he, a little before, spoken not by way of commandment ? It is for this reason, that he does not willingly constrain them to marry, but rather desires that they may be free from that necessity. As this, however, is not free to all, he has respect to infirmity. If this passage had been duly weighed, that perverse superstition connected with the desire of celibacy, which is the root and cause of great evils, would never have gained a footing in the world. Paul here expressly declares, that every one has not a free choice in this matter, because virginity is a special gift, that is not conferred upon all indiscriminately. Nor does he teach any other doctrine than what Christ himself does, when he says, that

all men are not capable of receiving this saying.
(Mat 19:11.)

Paul, therefore, is here an interpreter of our Lord’s words, when he says that this power has not been given to all — that of living without marriage.

What, in the meantime, has been done? Every one, without having any regard to his power, has, according to his liking, vowed perpetual continency. Nor has the error as to this matter been confined to the common people and illiterate persons; for even the most eminent doctors, devoting themselves unreservedly to the commendation of virginity, and forgetting human infirmity, have overlooked this admonition of Paul — nay rather, of Christ himself. Jerome, blinded by a zeal, I know not of what sort, does not simply fall, but rushes headlong, into false views. Virginity, I acknowledge, is an excellent gift; but keep it in view, that it is a gift. Learn, besides, from the mouth of Christ and of Paul, that it is not common to all, but is given only to a few. Guard, accordingly, against rashly devoting what is not in your own power, and what you will not obtain as a gift, if forgetful of your calling you aspire beyond your limits.

At the same time the ancients erred even in their estimate of virginity, for they extol it as if it were the most excellent of all virtues, and wish it to be regarded as the worship of God. 388 Even in this there is a dangerous error; and now follows another — that, after celibacy had begun to be so much esteemed, many, vying with each other, rashly vowed perpetual continency, while scarcely the hundredth part of them were endowed with the power and gift. Hence, too, a third sprung up — that the ministers of the Church were forbidden to enter into marriage, as a kind of life unbecoming the holiness of their order. 389 As for those who, despising marriage, rashly vowed perpetual continency, God punished their presumption, first, by the secret flames of lust; 390 and then afterwards, by horrible acts of filthiness. The ministers of the Churches being prohibited from lawful marriage, the consequence of this tyranny was, that the Church was robbed of very many good and faithful ministers; for pious and prudent men would not ensnare themselves in this way. At length, after a long course of time, lusts, which had been previously kept under, gave forth their abominable odor. It was reckoned a small matter for those, in whom it would have been a capital crime to have a wife, to maintain with impunity concubines, that is, prostitutes; but no house was safe from the impurities of the priests. Even that was reckoned a small matter; for there sprung up monstrous enormities, which it were better to bury in eternal oblivion than to make mention of them by way of example. 391

Calvin: 1Co 7:8 - -- 8.I say, then, to the unmarried This depends on what goes before, and is a sort of inference from it. He had said that the gifts of God are variously...

8.I say, then, to the unmarried This depends on what goes before, and is a sort of inference from it. He had said that the gifts of God are variously distributed — that continency is not in the power of all, and that those who have it not ought to have recourse to the remedy. He now directs his discourse to virgins, to all that are unmarried, and to widows, and he allows that an unmarried life ought to be desired by them, provided they have the power; but that regard must always be had by each individual to the power that he possesses. The sum is this, that an unmarried life has many advantages, and that these are not to be despised, provided every one measures himself according to his own size and measure. 392 Hence, though virginity should be extolled even to the third heavens, this, at the same time, always remains true — that it does not suit all, but only those who have a special gift from God. For as to the objection that is brought forward by Papists — that in baptism, also, we promise to God purity of life, which it is not in our power to perform, the answer is easy — that in that we promise nothing but what God requires from all his people, but that continency is a special gift, which God has withheld from many. Hence those who make a vow of continency, act precisely as if any unlearned and illiterate person were to set himself off as a prophet, or teacher, or interpreter of languages.

We must also notice carefully the word continue; for it is possible for a person to live chastely in a state of celibacy for a time, but there must be in this matter no determination made for tomorrow. Isaac was unmarried until he was thirty years of age, and passed in chastity those years in which the heats of irregular desire are most violent; yet afterwards he is called to enter into the married life. In Jacob we have a still more remarkable instance. Hence the Apostle would wish those who are at present practicing chastity, to continue in it and persevere; but as they have no security for the continuance of the gift, he exhorts all to consider carefully what has been given them. This passage, however, shows that the Apostle was at that time unmarried; for as to the inference drawn by Erasmus, that he was married, because he makes mention of himself in connection with married persons, it is frivolous and silly; for we might, on the same principle, infer that he was a widower, 393 because he speaks of himself in connection with widows. 394 Now the words intimate, that at that time he was unmarried; for I do not give any countenance to the conjecture, that he had put away his wife somewhere, and had of his own accord abandoned the use of the marriage bed. For where, in that case, had been the injunction, 395 Come together again without delay ? (1Co 7:5.) It would certainly be an absurdity to say, that he did not obey his own precepts, and did not observe the law which he imposed upon others. It is, however, a singular token of modesty, that, while he is himself endowed with the gift of continency, he does not require others to bind themselves to his rule, but allows them that remedy for infirmity which he dispenses with. Let us, then, imitate his example, so that if we excel in any particular gift, we do not rigorously insist upon it on the part of others, who have not as yet reached that height.

Calvin: 1Co 7:9 - -- 9.But if they cannot contain While he advises to abstain from marriage, he always speaks conditionally — if it can be done, if there is ability; b...

9.But if they cannot contain While he advises to abstain from marriage, he always speaks conditionally — if it can be done, if there is ability; but where the infirmity of the flesh does not allow of that liberty, he expressly enjoins marriage as a thing that is not in the least doubtful. For this is said by way of commandment, that no one may look upon it as mere advice. Nor is it merely fornicators that he restrains, but those also who are defiled in the sight of God by inward lust; and assuredly he that cannot contain tempts God, if he neglects the remedy of marriage. This matter requires — not advice, but strict prohibition.

For it is better There is not strictly a comparison here, inasmuch as lawful marriage is honorable in all things, (Heb 13:4,) but, on the other hand, to burn is a thing that is exceedingly wrong. The Apostle, however, has made use of a customary form of expression, though not strictly accurate, as we commonly say: “It is better to renounce this world that we may, along with Christ, enjoy the inheritance of the heavenly kingdom, than to perish miserably in carnal delights.” I mention this, because Jerome constructs upon this passage a childish sophism 396 — that marriage is good, inasmuch as it is not so great an evil as to burn I would say, if it were a matter of sport, that he foolishly amuses himself, but in a matter so weighty and serious, it is an impious scoff, unworthy of a man of judgment. Let it then be understood, that marriage is a good and salutary remedy, because to burn is a most base abomination in the sight of God. We must, however, define what is meant by burning; for many are stung with fleshly desires, who, nevertheless, do not require forthwith to have recourse to marriage. And to retain Paul’s metaphor, it is one thing to burn and another to feel heat. Hence what Paul here calls burning, is not a mere slight feeling, but a boiling with lust, so that you cannot resist. As, however, some flatter themselves in vain, by imagining that they are entirely free from blame, if they do not yield assent to impure desire, observe that there are three successive steps of temptation. For in some cases the assaults of impure desire have so much power that the will is overcome: that is the worst kind of burning, when the heart is inflamed with lust. In some instances, while we are stung with the darts of the flesh, it is in such a manner that we make a stout resistance, and do not allow ourselves to be divested of the true love of chastity, but on the contrary, abhor all base and filthy affections.

Hence all must be admonished, but especially the young, that whenever they are assailed by their fleshly inclinations, they should place the fear of God in opposition to a temptation of this sort, cut off all inlets to unchaste thoughts, entreat the Lord to give them strength to resist, and set themselves with all their might to extinguish the flames of lust. If they succeed in this struggle, let them render thanks unto the Lord, for where shall we find the man who does not experience some molestation from his flesh? but if we bridle its violence, before it has acquired the mastery, it is well. For we do not burn, though we should feel a disagreeable heat — not that there is nothing wrong in that feeling of heat, but acknowledging before the Lord, with humility and sighing, 397 our weakness, we are meanwhile, nevertheless, of good courage. To sum up all, so long as we come off victorious in the conflict, through the Lord’s grace, and Satan’s darts do not make their way within, but are valiantly repelled by us, let us not become weary of the conflict.

There is an intermediate kind of temptation 398 — when a man does not indeed admit impure desire with the full assent of his mind, but at the same time is inflamed with a blind impetuosity, and is harassed in such a manner that he cannot with peace of conscience call upon God. A temptation, then, of such a kind as hinders one from calling upon God in purity, and disturbs peace of conscience, is burning, such as cannot be extinguished except by marriage. We now see, that in deliberating as to this, one must not merely consider whether he can preserve his body free from pollution: the mind also must be looked to, as we shall see in a little.

Calvin: 1Co 7:10 - -- 10.To the married I command He now treats of another condition of marriage — its being an indissoluble tie. Accordingly, he condemns all those divo...

10.To the married I command He now treats of another condition of marriage — its being an indissoluble tie. Accordingly, he condemns all those divorces that were of daily occurrence among the heathens, and were not punished among the Jews by the law of Moses. Let not, says he, the husband put away his wife, and let not the wife depart from her husband. Why? Because they are joined together by an indissoluble bond. It is surprising, however, that he does not make an exception, at least in case of adultery; for it is not likely that he designed to curtail in anything the doctrine of Christ. To me it appears clear, that the reason why he has made no mention of this 399 is, that as he is discoursing of these things only in passing, he chose rather to send back the Corinthians to the Lord’s permission or prohibition, than to go over everything in detail. For when persons intend to teach anything in short compass, they content themselves with a general statement. Exceptions are reserved for a minuter and more extended and particular discussion.

But as to what he subjoins — not I, but the Lord — he intimates by this correction, that what he teaches here is taken from the law of God. For other things that he taught he had also from the revelation of the Spirit; but he declares that God is the author of this, in respect of its being expressly taken from the law of God. If you inquire as to the particular passage, you will nowhere find it in so many words; but as Moses in the beginning testifies, that the connection between a husband and wife is so sacred, that for the sake of it

a man ought to leave his father and mother. (Gen 2:24.)

It is easy to gather from this, how inviolable a connection it is. For by right of nature a son is bound to his father and mother, and cannot shake off that yoke. As the connection of marriage is preferred to that bond, much less ought it to be dissolved.

Calvin: 1Co 7:11 - -- 11.But if she depart That this is not to be understood of those who have been put away for adultery, is evident from the punishment that followed in ...

11.But if she depart That this is not to be understood of those who have been put away for adultery, is evident from the punishment that followed in that case; for it was a capital crime even by the Roman laws, and almost by the common law of nations. But as husbands frequently divorced their wives, either because their manners were not congenial, or because their personal appearance did not please them, or because of some offense; 400 and as wives, too, sometimes deserted their husbands on account of their cruelty, or excessively harsh and dishonorable treatment, he says that marriage is not dissolved by divorces or dissensions of that nature. For it is an agreement that is consecrated by the name of God, which does not stand or fall according to the inclination of men, so as to be made void whenever we may choose. The sum is this: other contracts, as they depend on the mere inclination of men, are in like manner dissolved by that same inclination; but those who are connected by marriage are no longer free, so as to be at liberty, if they change their mind, to break in pieces the pledge, 401 (as the expression is,) and go each of them elsewhere in quest of a new connection. For if the rights of nature cannot be dissolved, much less can this, which, as we have said already, is preferred before the principal tie of nature.

But as to his commanding the wife, who is separated from her husband, to remain unmarried, he does not mean by this that separation is allowable, nor does he give permission to the wife to live apart from her husband; but if she has been expelled from the house, or has been put away, she must not think that even in that case she is set free from his power; for it is not in the power of a husband to dissolve marriage. He does not therefore give permission here to wives to withdraw, of their own accord, from their husbands, or to live away from their husband’s establishment, as if they were in a state of widowhood; but declares, that even those who are not received by their husbands, continue to be bound, so that they cannot take other husbands.

But what if a wife is wanton, or otherwise incontinent? Would it not be inhuman to refuse her the remedy, when, constantly burning with desire? I answer, that when we are prompted by the infirmity of our flesh, we must have recourse to the remedy; after which it is the Lord’s part to bridle and restrain our affections by his Spirit, though matters should not succeed according to our desire. For if a wife should fall into a protracted illness, the husband would, nevertheless, not be justified in going to seek another wife. In like manner, if a husband should, after marriage, begin to labor under some distemper, it would not be allowable for his wife to change her condition of life. The sum is this — God having prescribed lawful marriage as a remedy for our incontinency, let us make use of it, that we may not, by tempting him, pay the penalty of our rashness. Having discharged this duty, let us hope that he will give us aid should matters go contrary to our expectations.

Calvin: 1Co 7:12 - -- 12.To the rest I say By the rest he means those who are exceptions, so that the law, common to others, is not applicable to them; for an unequal mar...

12.To the rest I say By the rest he means those who are exceptions, so that the law, common to others, is not applicable to them; for an unequal marriage is on a different footing, when married persons differ among themselves in respect of religion; Now this question he solves in two clauses. The first is, that the believing party ought not to withdraw from the unbelieving party, and ought not to seek divorce, unless she is put away. The second is, that if an unbeliever put away his wife on account of religion, a brother or a sister is, by such rejection, freed from the bond of marriage. But why is it that Paul speaks of himself as the author of these regulations, while they appear to be somewhat at variance with what he had, a little before, brought forward, as from the Lord? He does not mean that they are from himself in such a way as not to be derived from the Spirit of God; but, as there was nowhere in the law or in the Prophets any definite or explicit statement on this subject, he anticipates in this way the calumnies of the wicked, in claiming as his own what he was about to state. At the same time, lest all this should be despised as the offspring of man’s brain, we shall find him afterwards declaring, that his statement are not the contrivances of his own understanding. There is, however, nothing inconsistent with what goes before; for as the obligation and sanctity of the marriage engagement depend upon God, what connection can a pious woman any longer maintain with an unbelieving husband, after she has been driven away through hatred of God?

Calvin: 1Co 7:14 - -- 14.For the unbelieving husband is sanctified He obviates an objection, which might occasion anxiety to believers. The relationship of marriage is sin...

14.For the unbelieving husband is sanctified He obviates an objection, which might occasion anxiety to believers. The relationship of marriage is singularly close, so that the wife is the half of the man — so that they two are one flesh — (1Co 6:16) — so that the husband is the head of the wife; (Eph 5:23;) and she is her husband’s partner in everything; hence it seems impossible that a believing husband should live with an ungodly wife, or the converse of this, without being polluted by so close a connection. Paul therefore declares here, that marriage is, nevertheless, sacred and pure, and that we must not be apprehensive of contagion, as if the wife would contaminate the husband. Let us, however, bear in mind, that he speaks here not of contracting marriages, but of maintaining those that have been already contracted; for where the matter under consideration is, whether one should marry an unbelieving wife, or whether one should marry an unbelieving husband, then that exhortation is in point —

Be not yoked with unbelievers, for there is no agreement between Christ and Belial. (2Co 6:14.)

But he that is already bound has no longer liberty of choice; hence the advice given is different.

While this sanctification is taken in various senses, I refer it simply to marriage, in this sense — It might seem (judging from appearance) as if a believing wife contracted infection from an unbelieving husband, so as to make the connection unlawful; but it is otherwise, for the piety of the one has more effect in sanctifying marriage than the impiety of the other in polluting it. Hence a believer may, with a pure conscience, live with an unbeliever, for in respect of the use and intercourse of the marriage bed, and of life generally, he is sanctified, so as not to infect the believing party with his impurity. Meanwhile this sanctification is of no benefit to the unbelieving party; it only serves thus far, that the believing party is not contaminated by intercourse with him, and marriage itself is not profaned.

But from this a question arises — “If the faith of a husband or wife who is a Christian sanctifies marriage, it follows that all marriages of ungodly persons are impure, and differ nothing from fornication.” I answer, that to the ungodly all things are impure, (Tit 1:15,) because they pollute by their impurity even the best and choicest of God’s creatures. Hence it is that they pollute marriage itself, because they do not acknowledge God as its Author, and therefore they are not capable of true sanctification, and by an evil conscience abuse marriage. It is a mistake, however, to conclude from this that it differs nothing from fornication; for, however impure it is to them, it is nevertheless pure in itself, inasmuch as it is appointed by God, serves to maintain decency among men, and restrains irregular desires; and hence it is for these purposes approved by God, like other parts of political order. We must always, therefore, distinguish between the nature of a thing and the abuse of it.

Else were your children It is an argument taken from the effect — “If your marriage were impure, then the children that are the fruit of it would be impure; but they are holy; hence the marriage also is holy. As, then, the ungodliness of one of the parents does not hinder the children that are born from being holy, so neither does it hinder the marriage from being pure.” Some grammarians explain this passage as referring to a civil sanctity, in respect of the children being reckoned legitimate, but in this respect the condition of unbelievers is in no degree worse. That exposition, therefore, cannot stand. Besides, it is certain that Paul designed here to remove scruples of conscience, lest any one should think (as I have said) that he had contracted defilement. The passage, then, is a remarkable one, and drawn from the depths of theology; for it teaches, that the children of the pious are set apart from others by a sort of exclusive privilege, so as to be reckoned holy in the Church.

But how will this statement correspond with what he teaches elsewhere — that we are all by nature children of wrath; (Eph 2:3;) or with the statement of David — Behold I was conceived in sin, etc. (Psa 51:5.) I answer, that there is a universal propagation of sin and damnation throughout the seed of Adam, and all, therefore, to a man, are included in this curse, whether they are the offspring of believers or of the ungodly; for it is not as regenerated by the Spirit, that believers beget children after the flesh. The natural condition, therefore, of all is alike, so that they are liable equally to sin and to eternal death. As to the Apostle’s assigning here a peculiar privilege to the children of believers, this flows from the blessing of the covenant, by the intervention of which the curse of nature is removed; and those who were by nature unholy are consecrated to God by grace. Hence Paul argues, in his Epistle to the Romans, (Rom 11:16,) that the whole of Abraham’s posterity are holy, because God had made a covenant of life with him — If the root be holy, says he, then the branches are holy also. And God calls all that were descended from Israel his sons’ now that the partition is broken down, the same covenant of salvation that was entered into with the seed of Abraham 402 is communicated to us. But if the children of believers are exempted from the common lot of mankind, so as to be set apart to the Lord, why should we keep them back from the sign? If the Lord admits them into the Church by his word, why should we refuse them the sign? In what respects the offspring of the pious are holy, while many of them become degenerate, you will find explained in Rom 10:1 the Epistle to the Romans; and I have handled this point there.

Calvin: 1Co 7:15 - -- 15.But if an unbeliever depart This is the second department of his statement, in which he sets at liberty a believing husband, who is prepared to dw...

15.But if an unbeliever depart This is the second department of his statement, in which he sets at liberty a believing husband, who is prepared to dwell with an unbelieving wife, but is rejected by her, and in like manner a woman who is, without any fault on her part, repudiated by her husband; for in that case the unbelieving party makes a divorce with God rather than with his or her partner. There is, therefore, in this case a special reason, inasmuch as the first and chief bond is not merely loosed, but even utterly broken through. While some are of opinion that we are at this day situated in a much similar way with Papists, 403 we ought to consider wisely what difference there is between the two cases, that we may not attempt anything rashly.

In peace Here, too, interpreters differ; for some take it in this way — “We are called in peace: let us therefore avoid all ground and occasion of quarrels.” I take it in a more simple way: “Let us, so far as we can, cultivate peace with all, to which we have been called. We must not, therefore, rashly separate from unbelievers, unless they first make a divorce. God, therefore, has called us in peace to this end, that we might cultivate peace with all, by acting properly towards every one.” This, then, belongs to the former department of his statement — that

believers ought to remain with unbelievers, if they are p1eased, etc., (1Co 7:12,)

because a desire for divorce is at variance with our profession.

Calvin: 1Co 7:16 - -- 16.For what knowest thou, O woman? Those who are of opinion that this observation is a confirmation of the second department of his statement, expo...

16.For what knowest thou, O woman? Those who are of opinion that this observation is a confirmation of the second department of his statement, expound it thus. “An uncertain hope ought not to detain thee,” etc. But, in my opinion, the exhortation is taken from the advantage to be derived; for it is a great and distinguished blessing if a wife gain (1Co 9:19) her husband. Now, unbelievers are not in so hopeless a condition but that they may be brought to believe. They are dead, it is true, but God can even raise the dead. So long, therefore, as there remains any hope of doing good, and the pious wife knows not but that she may by her holy conversation (1Pe 3:1) bring back her husband into the way, 404 she ought to try every means before leaving him; for so long as a man’s salvation is doubtful, it becomes us to be prepared rather to hope the best.

As to his saying, however, that a husband may be saved by his wife, the expression, it is true, is not strictly accurate, as he ascribes to man what belongs to God; but there is no absurdity in it. For as God acts efficaciously by his instruments which he makes use of, he does, in a manner, communicate his power to them, or, at least, he connects it with their service in such a manner, that what he does he speaks of as being done by them, and hence, too, he sometimes ascribes to them the honor which is due to himself alone. Let us, however, bear in mind, that we have nothing in our power, except in so far as we are directed by him as instruments.

Calvin: 1Co 7:17 - -- 17.Unless every one, according as God has dispensed his grace, etc. Such is the literal meaning: only I have in my rendering made use of the nominati...

17.Unless every one, according as God has dispensed his grace, etc. Such is the literal meaning: only I have in my rendering made use of the nominative, 405 in order that the connection may be more easy and natural. The meaning is: “What, then, is to be done, unless 406 that every one walk according to the grace given to him, and according to his calling? Let every one, therefore, labor for this, and use his endeavor, that he may do good to his neighbors, and, more especially, when he ought to be excited to it by the particular duty of his calling.” He mentions two things — the calling, and the measure of grace These he desires us to look to in deliberating as to this matter; as it ought to be no small stimulus to us to duty, that God condescends to make us ministers of his grace for the salvation of our brethren; while the calling, on the other hand, should hold us, as it were, under God’s yoke, even where an individual feels his situation to be an unpleasant one.

And so in all the Churches I am of opinion that he added this, with the view of obviating the calumnies of some who boasted that he assumed more authority over the Corinthians than he ventured to do over others. At the same time he might have also another end in view — that this doctrine might have the more weight, when the Corinthians understood that it was already published in all the Churches. For we embrace the more readily what we understand that we have in common with all the pious. The Corinthians, on the other hand, would have felt it hateful to be bound more closely than others.

Calvin: 1Co 7:18 - -- 18.Circumcised, etc. As he had made mention of the calling, he takes occasion, from a particular instance, to make a digression for a little into a ...

18.Circumcised, etc. As he had made mention of the calling, he takes occasion, from a particular instance, to make a digression for a little into a general exhortation, as he is wont to do in many instances; and, at the same time, he confirms, by different examples, what he had said respecting marriage. The sum is this, that in external things you must not rashly abandon the calling on which you have once entered by the will of God. And he begins with circumcisions, respecting which many at that time disputed. Now, he says that with God it makes no difference whether you are a Gentile or a Jew. Hence he exhorts every one to be contented with his condition. It must always be kept in view, that he treats only of lawful modes of life, which have God as their approver and author.

Calvin: 1Co 7:19 - -- 19.Circumcision is nothing While this similitude was suited to the subject in hand, it appears to have been designedly made use of with the view of r...

19.Circumcision is nothing While this similitude was suited to the subject in hand, it appears to have been designedly made use of with the view of reproving, in passing, the superstition and haughtiness of the Jews. For, as the Jews gloried in circumcision, it was possible that many might feel dissatisfied with the want of it, as if their condition were the worse on that account. Paul, therefore, places both conditions upon a level, lest, through hatred of the one, the other should be foolishly desired. These things, however, must be understood as referring to the time when circumcision was at length abolished; for, if he had had an eye to the covenant of God, and his commandment, he would, without doubt, have estimated it higher. In another passage, it is true, he makes light of the letter of circumcision, (Rom 2:27,) and declares that it is of no account in the sight of God; but here, as he simply contrasts circumcision with uncircumcision, and makes both alike, it is certain that he speaks of it as a matter of indifference and of no moment. For the abolishing of it has this effect — that the mystery which had been previously conveyed under it, does not now any longer belong to it: nay more, it is now no longer a sign, but a thing of no use. For baptism has come in the place of the symbol used under the law on this footing, that it is enough that we be circumcised by the Spirit of Christ, while our old man is buried with Christ.

But the keeping of the commandments As this was one of the commandments, so long as the Church was bound to legal ceremonies, we see that it is taken for granted, that circumcision had been abolished by the advent of Christ, so that the use of it, indeed, was allowed among the ignorant and weak, but advantage in it — there was none. For Paul speaks of it here as a thing of no moment: “As these are outward things, let them not take up your attention, but devote yourself rather to piety and the duties which God requires, and which are alone precious in his sight.” As to the circumstance that Papists bring forward this passage for the purpose of overthrowing justification by faith, it is utterly childish; for Paul is not disputing here as to the ground of justification, or the way in which we obtain it, but simply as to the object to which the aim of believers ought to be directed. “Do not occupy yourselves to no purpose in things of no profit, but, on the contrary, exercise yourselves in duties that are well pleasing to God.”

Calvin: 1Co 7:20 - -- 20.Every man in the calling in which This is the source from which other things are derived, — that every one should be contented with his calling...

20.Every man in the calling in which This is the source from which other things are derived, — that every one should be contented with his calling, and pursue it, instead of seeking to betake himself to anything else. A calling in Scripture means a lawful mode of life, for it has a relation to God as calling us, 407 — lest any one should abuse this statement 408 to justify modes of life that are evidently wicked or vicious. But here it is asked, whether Paul means to establish any obligation, 409 for it might seem as though the words conveyed this idea, that every one is bound to his calling, so that he must not abandon it. Now it were a very hard thing if a tailor 410 were not at liberty to learn another trade, or if a merchant were not at liberty to betake himself to farming. I answer, that this is not what the Apostle intends, for he has it simply in view to correct that inconsiderate eagerness, which prompts some to change their condition without any proper reason, whether they do it from superstition, or from any other motive. Farther, he calls every one to this rule also — that they bear in mind what is suitable to their calling He does not, therefore, impose upon any one the necessity of continuing in the kind of life which he has once taken up, but rather condemns that restlessness, which prevents an individual from remaining in his condition with a peaceable mind 411 and he exhorts, that every one stick by his trade, as the old proverb goes.

Calvin: 1Co 7:21 - -- 21.Art thou called being a servant ? We see here that Paul’s object 412 is to satisfy their consciences; for he exhorts servants to be of good chee...

21.Art thou called being a servant ? We see here that Paul’s object 412 is to satisfy their consciences; for he exhorts servants to be of good cheer, and not be cast down, as if servitude were a hinderance in the way of their serving God. Care not for it then, that is to say, be not concerned how you may throw off the yoke, as if it were a condition unbecoming a Christian, but be contented in mind. And hence we infer, not merely that it is owing to the providence of God that there are different ranks and stations in the world, but also, that a regard to them is enjoined by his word.

But if thou mayest even be made free The particle even (in my opinion) has simply this force, — “If, in place of servitude, you could attain even to liberty, it would be more advantageous for you.” It is uncertain, however, whether he continues his discourse to servants, or turns to address those that are free. In the latter case,γενέσθαι would here mean simply to be Either meaning suits sufficiently well, and they amount to the same thing. He means to intimate, that liberty is not merely good, but also more advantageous than servitude. If he is speaking to servants, his meaning will be this — While I exhort you to be free from anxiety, I do not hinder you from even availing yourselves of liberty, if an opportunity presents itself to you. If he is addressing himself to those that are free, it will be a kind of concession, as though he had said — I exhort servants to be of good courage, though a state of freedom is preferable, 413 and more to be desired, if one has it in his choice.

Calvin: 1Co 7:22 - -- 22.For he that is called in the Lord, being a servant To be called in the Lord, being a servant, is to be chosen out of the rank of servants, and ma...

22.For he that is called in the Lord, being a servant To be called in the Lord, being a servant, is to be chosen out of the rank of servants, and made a partaker of the grace of Christ. Now this statement is designed to furnish consolation to servants, and, at the same time, to beat down the haughtiness of those that are free-born. As servants feel their situation irksome, in respect of their being mean and despicable, it is of importance that the bitterness of servitude be alleviated by some consolation. Those, on the other hand, that are free, need to be restrained, in order that they may not be unduly elated on account of their more honorable condition, and be lifted up with pride. The Apostle does both; for he teaches, that as the liberty of the spirit is greatly preferable to the liberty of the flesh, servants ought to feel the unpleasantness of their condition the more tolerable, when they take into view that inestimable gift with which they have been endowed; and, on the other hand, that those who are free ought not to be puffed up, inasmuch as their condition in the principal respect is not superior to that of servants. We must not, however, infer from this, that those that are free are made inferior to servants, or that political order is subverted. The Apostle saw what suited both. Those that were free required (as I have said) to be restrained, that they might not in a wanton manner triumph over servants. To servants, on the other hand, some consolation required to be administered, that they might not be disheartened. Now these things tend rather to confirm political order, while he teaches that the inconvenience of the flesh is compensated by a spiritual benefit.

Calvin: 1Co 7:23 - -- 23.Yea are bought with a price We had these words in the preceding chapter, (1Co 6:20,) but for a different purpose. As to the word price, I have st...

23.Yea are bought with a price We had these words in the preceding chapter, (1Co 6:20,) but for a different purpose. As to the word price, I have stated there, what is my view of it. The sum is this, that he exhorts servants, indeed, not to be anxious as to their condition, but wishes them rather to take heed not to subject themselves to the wicked or depraved inclinations of their masters. “We are holy to the Lord, because he has redeemed us: let us, therefore, not defile ourselves for the sake of men, as we do when we are subject to their corrupt desires.” This admonition was very necessary at that time, when servants were driven by threats and stripes, and even fear of death, to obey every kind of command without selection or exception, so that they reckoned the procuring of prostitutes, and other crimes of that nature, to be duties belonging to servants, equally with honorable employment’s. It is, therefore, not without reason that Paul makes this exception — that they are not to yield obedience in things base and wicked. Would that this were thoroughly and entirely impressed upon the minds of all! There would not, in that case, be so many that prostitute themselves to the lusts of men, as if exposed for sale. As for us, let us bear in mind, that we belong to him who has redeemed us.

Calvin: 1Co 7:24 - -- 24.Let him abide with God I have already noticed above, that men are not here bound by a perpetual necessity, so as never to have it in their power t...

24.Let him abide with God I have already noticed above, that men are not here bound by a perpetual necessity, so as never to have it in their power to change their condition, if at any time there should be a fit occasion for it; but that he simply represses those thoughtless humors, which hurry men hither and thither, so that they are harassed by a continual restlessness. Hence Paul says, that it is all one in the sight of God what a person’s manner of life is in this world, inasmuch as this diversity does not hinder agreement in piety.

Calvin: 1Co 7:25 - -- 25.Concerning virgins He now returns to treat of marriage, of which he had begun to speak in the commencement of the chapter. What he is now about to...

25.Concerning virgins He now returns to treat of marriage, of which he had begun to speak in the commencement of the chapter. What he is now about to state he had previously touched upon, but briefly and somewhat obscurely. He accordingly intimates more explicitly what his views are respecting virginity; but as it is a matter that is liable to be misapprehended, and is full of difficulties, he always speaks, as we shall see, conditionally. Virgins here I understand as meaning virginity. As to this, he says he has no commandment of the Lord; because the Lord does not in any part of the Scriptures declare what persons ought to remain unmarried. Nay, on the contrary, inasmuch as the Scripture says, that

male and female were created together, (Gen 2:21,)

it seems as if it called every one equally and without exception to marriage: 414 at least celibacy is nowhere enjoined upon any one, or commended.

He says that he gives advice, not as if there were anything doubtful in it, and had little or no stability, but as being certain, and deserving to be maintained without any controversy. The word, too, that he employs, γνώμη, signifies not merely advice, but a decisive judgment. 415 Papists, however, rashly infer from this, that it is allowable to go beyond the limits of God’s word, since nothing was farther from Paul’s intention than to go beyond the limits of God’s word for if any one attends more closely, he will see, that Paul here advances nothing but what is included in what Christ says in Mat 5:32, and Mat 19:5; but in the way of anticipating an objection, he acknowledges that he has no express precept in the law, pointing out who ought to marry, and who not

Having obtained mercy to be faithful He secures authority for his decision, that no one may think himself at liberty to reject it, if he chooses. For he declares that he does not speak simply as a man, but as a faithful teacher of the Church, and an Apostle of Christ. According to his custom, he declares himself to be indebted for this to the mercy of God, 416 as it was no common honor, nay superior to all human merits. Hence it appears, that whatever things have been introduced into the Church by human authority, 417 have nothing in common with this advice of Paul. But faithful here means truthful — one who does not do what he does merely from pious zeal, but is also endowed with knowledge, so as to teach with purity and faithfulness For it is not enough for a teacher to be conscientious, if he has not also prudence and acquaintance with the truth.

Calvin: 1Co 7:26 - -- 26.I think therefore that this is good While I translate this passage of Paul’s writings differently from Erasmus or the Vulgate, I at the same tim...

26.I think therefore that this is good While I translate this passage of Paul’s writings differently from Erasmus or the Vulgate, I at the same time do not differ from them as to its meaning. They divide Paul’s words in such a way, that the same thing is repeated twice. I, on the other hand, make it simply one proposition, and not without authority, for I follow ancient and approved manuscripts, which make it all one sentence, with merely a colon between. The meaning is this: “I think it expedient on account of the necessity, with which the saints are always harassed in this life, that all should enjoy the liberty and advantage of celibacy, as this would be of advantage to them.” There are some, however, that view the term necessity as referring to the age of the Apostle, which was, undoubtedly, full of trouble to the pious: but he appears to me to have had it rather in view to express the disquietude with which the saints are incessantly harassed in the present life. I view it, therefore, as extending to all ages, and I understand it in this way, that the saints are often, in this world, driven hither and thither, and are exposed to many and various tempests, 418 so that their condition appears to be unsuitable for marriage. The phrase so to be, signifies to remain unmarried, or to abstain from marriage.

Calvin: 1Co 7:27 - -- 27.Art thou bound to a wife? Having stated what would be most advantageous, he adds at the same time, that we ought not to be so much influenced by t...

27.Art thou bound to a wife? Having stated what would be most advantageous, he adds at the same time, that we ought not to be so much influenced by the advantages of celibacy, that one that is bound by the tie of marriage should shake off the connection. It is therefore a restriction upon the preceding statement, lest any one, influenced by his commendation of celibacy, should turn his thoughts to it, and despise marriage, forgetful of his necessity or of his calling Now in these words he does not merely forbid the breaking up of the connection of marriage, but also represses the dislikes that are wont to creep in, that every one may continue to live with his wife willingly and cheerfully.

Art thou loosed from a wife? This second clause must be taken with a reservation, as is manifest from the entire context. He does not, then, allow to all the choice of perpetual celibacy, but only to those to whom it is given. Let no one, therefore, who is not constrained by any necessity, rashly ensnare himself, for liberty ought not to be lightly thrown away. 419

Calvin: 1Co 7:28 - -- 28.But if thou shouldest even marry As there was a danger of one’s thinking from the preceding statement, that he tempted God, if he knowingly and ...

28.But if thou shouldest even marry As there was a danger of one’s thinking from the preceding statement, that he tempted God, if he knowingly and willingly bound himself to marriage, (as that would be to renounce his liberty,) he removes this scruple; for he gives liberty to widows to marry, and says, that those that marry do not sin. The word even also seems to be emphatic — to intimate, that even though there be no positive necessity urging to it, the unmarried are not prohibited from marrying whenever they may see fit.

And if a virgin marry Whether this is an amplification, or simply an illustration, this, in the first place, is beyond all controversy, that Paul designed to extend the liberty of marriage to all. Those who think that it is an amplification, are led to think so by this, that it seems to approach nearer to a fault, and is more open to reprehension, or at least has more occasion of shame, to loose the virgin girdle (as the ancients express themselves) than, upon the death of a husband, to enter into a second marriage. The argument then would be this: “If it is lawful for a virgin to marry, much more may widows.” I am rather of opinion, that he makes both equal in this way: “As it is allowable for a virgin, so is it for widows also.” For second marriages among the ancients were not without some mark of reproach, as they adorned those matrons, who had contented themselves with one marriage during their whole life, with a chaplet of chastity 420 — an honor that tended to reflect reproach upon those that had married repeatedly. And it is a well known saying of Valerius, 421 that “it betokens a legitimate excess 422 when a second marriage is desired.” The Apostle, therefore, makes virgins and widows alike as to liberty of marriage.

Nevertheless such shall have trouble in the flesh. He frequently repeats the reason why he leans more to the side of celibacy in his exhortations, lest he should seem to prefer the one condition to the other on its own account, rather than on account of its consequences. He says, that there are many troubles that are connected with the married life, and that on that account he wishes all to be free from marriage, who desire to be exempt from troubles. When he says, that they will have trouble of the flesh, or in the flesh, he means, that the anxieties and distresses in which married persons are involved arise from the affairs of the world. The flesh, therefore, is taken here to mean the outward man. To spare means to indulge, or to wish them to be exempted from the troubles that are connected with marriage. “I am desirous to make provision for your infirmity, that you may not have trouble: now marriage brings with it many troubles. This is the reason why I should wish you not to require to marry — that you may be exempt from all its evils.” Do not, however, infer from this that Paul reckons marriage to be a necessary evil for those troubles of which he speaks do not arise so much from the nature of marriage, as from the corruption of it, for they are the fruits of original sin.

Calvin: 1Co 7:29 - -- 29.Because the time is short, etc. Again he discourses respecting the holy use of marriage, for the purpose of repressing the wantonness of those who...

29.Because the time is short, etc. Again he discourses respecting the holy use of marriage, for the purpose of repressing the wantonness of those who, when they have married, think of nothing but the delights of the flesh. They have no remembrance of God. Hence he exhorts believers not to give way to unbridled desire in such a way, that marriage should have the effect of plunging them into the world. Marriage is a remedy for incontinency. It has really the effect, if it be used with moderation. He therefore exhorts married persons to live together chastely in the fear of the Lord. This will be effected, if marriage is made use of by them, like other helps of this earthly life, having their hearts directed upwards to meditation on the heavenly life. Now, he draws his argument from the shortness of human life: “This life,” says he, “which we are now spending is frail, and of short duration. Let us not therefore be held entangled by it. Let those accordingly who have wives, be as though they had none. ” Every one, it is true, has this philosophy in his mouth, but few have it truly and in good earnest impressed upon their minds. In my first translation, I had followed a manuscript, to which (as I afterwards discovered) not one of the many others gave any countenance. I have accordingly deemed it proper to insert the particle because, to make the meaning more apparent, and in accordance also with the reading in some ancient copies. For as in those cases in which we are deliberating as to anything, we look to the future rather than to the past, he admonishes us as to the shortness of the time that is to come.

As though they had none All things that are connected with the enjoyment of the present life are sacred gifts of God, but we pollute them when we abuse them. If the reason is asked, we shall find it to be this, that we always dream of continuance in the world, for it is owing to this that those things which ought to be helps in passing through it become hindrances to hold us fast. Hence, it is not without good reason, that the Apostle, with the view of arousing us from this stupidity, calls us to consider the shortness of this life, and infers from this, that we ought to use all the things of this world, as if we did not use them. For the man who considers that he is a stranger in the world uses the things of this world as if they were another’s — that is, as things that are lent us for a single day. The sum is this, that the mind of a Christian ought not to be taken up with earthly things, or to repose in them; for we ought to live as if we were every moment about to depart from this life. By weeping and rejoicing, he means adversity and prosperity; for it is customary to denote causes by their effects. 424 The Apostle, however, does not here command Christians to part with their possessions, but simply requires that their minds be not engrossed in their possessions. 425

Calvin: 1Co 7:31 - -- 31.And they that use this world In the first clause there is the participle χρώμενοι ( using,) in the second, there is a compound of it ...

31.And they that use this world In the first clause there is the participle χρώμενοι ( using,) in the second, there is a compound of it — καταχρώμενοι ( abusing.) Now the preposition κατα in a compound state is generally taken in a bad sense, or at least denotes intensity. 426 Paul, therefore, directs us to a sober and frugal use of things, such as may not impede or retard our course, but may allow of our always hastening forward toward the goal.

For the fashion of this world passeth away By the term here used, the Apostle has elegantly expressed the vanity of the world. “There is nothing,” says he, “that is firm or solid; 427 for it is a mere show or outward appearance, as they speak.” He seems, however, to have had an allusion to theatrical representations, in which, on the curtain being drawn up in a single moment, a new appearance is presented, and those things that held the eyes of the spectators in astonishment, are immediately withdrawn from their view. I do not see why it is that Erasmus has preferred the term habitus (form.) He certainly, in my opinion, obscures Paul’s doctrine; for the term fashion is tacitly opposed to substance. 428

Calvin: 1Co 7:32 - -- 32.But I would wish you He returns to the advice which he had spoken of, (1Co 7:25,) but had not as yet fully explained, and in the outset he prono...

32.But I would wish you He returns to the advice which he had spoken of, (1Co 7:25,) but had not as yet fully explained, and in the outset he pronounces, as he is wont, a commendation upon celibacy, and then afterwards allows every one the liberty of choosing what he may consider to suit him best. It is not, however, without good reason that he returns so frequently to proclaim the advantages of celibacy, for he saw that the burdens of matrimony were far from light. The man who can exempt himself from them, ought not to refuse such a benefit, and it is of advantage for those who resolve to marry, to be forewarned of those inconveniences, that they may not afterwards, on meeting with them unexpectedly, give way to despondency. This we see happens to many, for having promised themselves unmixed honey, on being disappointed in that expectation, they are very readily cast down by the slightest mishap. 429 Let them know, therefore, in good time, what they have to expect, that they may be prepared to endure everything patiently. The meaning is this: “Marriage brings along with it hindrances, from which I should wish you to be free and exempt.”

As, however, he has previously made use of the term trouble, (1Co 7:28,) and now makes mention of cares or anxieties, it may admit of doubt whether they have a different signification, or not. I am of opinion that the trouble referred to is what arises from things of a distressing nature, such as loss of children, widowhood, quarrels, and little differences, (as lawyers speak,) 430 many occasions of dislike, faults of children, difficulty in bringing up a family, and the like. The anxieties, on the other hand, are, in my opinion, connected with things that are joyful, as for example marriage fooleries, jests, and other things with which married persons are taken up. 431

He that is unmarried careth for the things of the Lord Mark the kind of exemption from anxieties that he desires in behalf of Christians — that they may devote to the Lord all their thoughts and aims. This, he says, belongs to celibacy; and therefore he desires all to enjoy this liberty. He does not mean, however, that it is invariably so in unmarried life, as experience shows it to be quite otherwise in priests, monks, and nuns, than whose celibacy nothing can be conceived to be farther from God. Add to this the many base fornicators who abstain from marriage for the very purpose of having greater liberty for the indulgence of lust, and that their vice may not appear. Where there is burning, (1Co 7:9,) no love of God can exist. But Paul’s meaning is this — that an unmarried person is free, and is not hindered from thinking of the things of God. The pious make use of this liberty. Others turn everything to their own destruction.

Calvin: 1Co 7:33 - -- 33.He that is married careth for the things of the world. By the things of the world you must understand the things that belong to the present life...

33.He that is married careth for the things of the world. By the things of the world you must understand the things that belong to the present life; for the world is taken here to mean the condition of this earthly life. But from this someone will infer, that all, therefore, who are married are strangers to the kingdom of God, 432 as thinking of nothing but this earth. I answer, that the Apostle speaks only of a portion of the thoughts, as though he had said: “They have one eye directed to the Lord, but in such a way as to have the other directed to their wife; for marriage is like a burden, by which the mind of a pious man is weighed down, so that he does not move God-ward with so much alacrity.” Let us always, however, bear in mind, that these evils do not belong to marriage, but proceed from the depravity of men. Hence the calumnies of Jerome, 433 who scrapes together all these things for the purpose of bringing marriages into disrepute, fall. For, were any one to condemn agriculture, merchandise, and other modes of life, on this ground, that amidst so many corruption’s of the world, there is not one of them that is exempt from certain evils, who is there that would not smile at his folly? Observe, then, that whatever evil there is in marriage, has its origin somewhere else; for at this day a man would not have been turned away from the Lord by the society of his wife, if he had remained in a state of innocence, and had not corrupted the holy institution of God; but a wife would have been a help-meet to him in everything good, as she was created for that end. (Gen 2:18.)

But some one will say: “If anxieties that are faulty and blameworthy are invariably connected with marriage, how is it possible for married persons to call upon God, and serve him, with a pure conscience?” I answer, that there are three kinds of anxieties. There are some that are evil and wicked in themselves, because they spring from distrust. Of these Christ speaks in Mat 6:25 : There are others that are necessary, and are not displeasing to God; as, for example, it becomes the father of a family to be concerned for his wife and children, and God does not mean that we should be mere stumps, so as to have no concern as to ourselves. The third class are a mixture of the two former; when we are anxious respecting those things as to which we ought to feel anxiety, but feel too keenly excited, in consequence of that excess which is natural to us. Such anxieties, therefore, are not by any means wrong in themselves, but they are corrupt, in consequence of αταξια, that is to say, undue excess. And the Apostle did not intend merely to condemn here those vices by which we contract guilt in the sight of God, but he desires in a general way, that we may be freed from all impediments, so as to be wholly at leisure for the service of God.

And is divided It is surprising how there has come to be so much diversity upon this passage. For the common Greek version is so widely different from the old Latin translation, that the diversity cannot be ascribed to mistake or inadvertence, in the way in which a mistake often happens in a single letter or a single word. Now the Greeks commonly read it literally, “He that is married thinks of the things of the world, how he may please his wife: a married woman and a virgin are divided: She that is unmarried, thinketh of the things of the Lord,” etc. And being divided they understand as meaning to differ, as if it had been said: “There is a great difference between a married woman and a virgin; for the one is at leisure to attend to the things of God exclusively, while the other is taken up with various matters.” But as this interpretation is somewhat at variance with the simple meaning of the word, I do not approve of it, especially as the meaning of the other reading (which is found also in some Greek manuscripts) is more suitable and less forced. We may, accordingly, understand it in this manner — that a man who is married is divided, 434 inasmuch as he devotes himself partly to God and partly to his wife, and is not wholly and exclusively God’s.

Calvin: 1Co 7:34 - -- 34.The unmarried woman and the virgin What he had laid down as to men he now declares in like manner as to women — that virgins and widows are not ...

34.The unmarried woman and the virgin What he had laid down as to men he now declares in like manner as to women — that virgins and widows are not prevented by earthly things from devoting their whole cares and their whole affections to God. Not that all act this part, but that there is opportunity for it, if the mind is so disposed. When he says, that she may be holy in body and in spirit, he shows what kind of chastity is true and acceptable to God — when the mind is kept unpolluted in the sight of God. Would to God that this were more carefully attended to! As to the body, we see what kind of devotement to the Lord there commonly is on the part of monks, nuns, and the whole scum of the Papistical clergy, than whose celibacy nothing can be imagined that is more obscene. 435 But not to speak at present of chastity of body, where is there one to be found among those that are held in admiration in consequence of their reputation for continency, that does not burn with base lusts? We may, however, infer from this statement of Paul, that no chastity is well pleasing to God that does not extend to the soul as well as to the body Would to God that those who prate in such haughty terms as to continency, did but understand that they have to do with God! They would not be so confident in their contendings with us. At the same time, there are none in the present day who dispute on the subject of continency in more magnificent style than those who are openly and in the most shameless manner guilty of fornication. But though they should conduct themselves ever so honorably in the sight of men, that is nothing, if they do not keep their minds pure and exempt from all uncleanness.

Calvin: 1Co 7:35 - -- 35.And this for your benefit Observe the Apostle’s moderation. 436 Though he knew the vexations, troubles, and difficulties of the married life, an...

35.And this for your benefit Observe the Apostle’s moderation. 436 Though he knew the vexations, troubles, and difficulties of the married life, and, on the other hand, the advantages of celibacy, yet he does not venture to prescribe. On the contrary, having commended celibacy, and being afraid that some of his readers might be led away by such commendations, and might straightway say within themselves what the Apostles said in reply to Christ — It is good, therefore, so to be, (Mat 19:10) 437 — not in the meantime taking into view their ability, he here declares in express terms, that he points out, indeed, what is most advantageous, but does not wish to impose a necessity upon any one.

And here you have two things worthy of observation. The first is, for what purpose celibacy is to be desired — not on its own account, nor on the ground of its being a state that is nearer to perfection, but that we may cleave to God without distraction — that being the one thing that a Christian man ought exclusively to look to during his whole life. The second thing is, that no snare must be put upon men’s consciences, so as to keep back any one from marriage, but that every one must have liberty allowed him. It is well known what grievous errors have been fallen into on both these points. As to the second point, those assuredly have been bolder than Paul, who have not shrunk from passing a law respecting celibacy, with the view of prohibiting the whole of the clergy from matrimony. The same may be said of those who have made vows of perpetual continency, which are snares by which not a few myriads of souls have been drawn into endless ruin. Hence, if the Holy Spirit has spoken by the mouth of Paul, Papists cannot clear themselves from the crime of fighting against God, (Act 5:39,) while binding men’s consciences in a matter in which He designed that they should remain free unless, perhaps, He 438 has since that time adopted a new plan, so as to construct a snare, which he had previously disapproved of.

Calvin: 1Co 7:36 - -- 36.But if any one thinketh that it were unseemly for his virgin He now directs his discourse to parents, who had children under their authority. For ...

36.But if any one thinketh that it were unseemly for his virgin He now directs his discourse to parents, who had children under their authority. For having heard the praises of celibacy, and having heard also of the inconveniences of matrimony, they might be in doubt, whether it were at all a kind thing to involve their children in so many miseries, lest it should seem as if they were to blame for the troubles that might befall them. For the greater their attachment to their children, so much the more anxiously do they exercise fear and caution on their account. 439 Paul, then, with the view of relieving them from this difficulty, teaches that it is their duty to consult their advantage, exactly as one would do for himself when at his own disposal. 440 Now he still keeps up the distinction, which he has made use of all along, so as to commend celibacy, but, at the same time, to leave marriage as a matter of choice; and not simply a matter of choice, but a needful remedy for incontinency, which ought not to be denied to any one. In the first part of the statement he speaks as to the giving of daughters in marriage, and he declares that those do not sin in giving away their daughters in marriage, who are of opinion that an unmarried life is not suitable for them.

The word ἀσχημονεῖν (to be unseemly) must be taken as referring to a special propriety, which depends on what is natural to the individual; for there is a general propriety, which philosophers make to be a part of temperance. That belongs equally to all. There is another, that is special, because one thing becomes one individual that would not be seemly in another. Every one therefore should consider (as Cicero observes) what is the part that nature has assigned to him. 441 Celibacy will be seemly for one, but he must not measure all by his own foot; 442 and others should not attempt to imitate him without taking into view their ability; for it is the imitation of the ape — which is at variance with nature. If, therefore, a father, having duly considered his daughter’s disposition, is of opinion that she is not prepared for celibacy, let him give her away in marriage. 443

By the flower of her age he means the marriageable age. This lawyers define to be from twelve to twenty years of age. Paul points out, in passing, what equity and humanity ought to be exercised by parents, in applying a remedy in that tender and slippery age, when the force of the disease requires it. And it requires to be so. In this clause I understand him as referring to the girl’s infirmity — in the event of her not having the gift of continency; for in that case, necessity constrains her to marry. As to Jerome’s making a handle of the expression sinneth not, for reviling marriage, with a view to its disparagement, as if it were not a praiseworthy action to dispose of a daughter in marriage, it is quite childish. 444 For Paul reckoned it enough to exempt fathers from blame, that they might not reckon it a cruel thing to subject their daughters to the vexations connected with marriage.

Calvin: 1Co 7:37 - -- 37.But he who standeth firm in his heart Here we have the second part of the statement, in which he treats of young women who have the gift of abst...

37.But he who standeth firm in his heart Here we have the second part of the statement, in which he treats of young women who have the gift of abstaining from marriage. He commends therefore those fathers who make provision for their tranquillity; but let us observe what he requires. In the first place, he makes mention of a steadfast purpose — If any one has fully resolved with himself. You must not, however, understand by this the resolution formed by monks — that is, a voluntary binding over to perpetual servitude — for such is the kind of vow that they make; but he expressly makes mention of this firmness of purpose, because mankind often contrive schemes which they next day regret. As it is a matter of importance, he requires a thoroughly matured purpose.

In the second place he speaks of the person as having no necessity; for many, when about to deliberate, bring obstinacy with them rather than reason. And in the present case 445 they do not consider, when they renounce marriage, what is in their power, but reckon it enough to say — “such is my choice. ” Paul requires them to have power, that they may not decide rashly, but according to the measure of the grace that has been given them. The absence of necessity in the case he appropriately expresses in the following clause, when he says that they have power over their own will. For it is as though he had said — “I would not have them resolve before knowing that they have power to fulfill, for it is rash and ruinous 446 to struggle against an appointment of God.” But, “ according to this system,” some one will say, “vows are not to be condemned, provided these conditions were annexed.” I answer that, as to the gift of continency, as we are uncertain respecting the will of God as to the future, we ought not to form any determination for our whole life. Let us make use of the gift as long as it is allowed us. In the meantime, let us commit ourselves to the Lord, prepared to follow whithersoever he may call us (Rev 14:4.)

Hath decreed in his heart Paul seems to have added this to express the idea more fully, that fathers ought to look carefully on all sides, before giving up anxiety and intention as to giving away their daughters in marriage. For they often decline marriage, either from shame or from ignorance of themselves, while, in the meantime, they are not the less wanton, or prone to be led astray 447 Parents must here consider well what is for the interests of their daughters, that by their prudence they may correct their ignorance, or unreasonable desire.

Now this passage serves to establish the authority of parents, which ought to be held sacred, as having its origin in the common rights of nature. Now if in other actions of inferior moment no liberty is allowed to children, without the authority of their parents, much less is it reasonable that they should have liberty given them in the contracting of marriage. And that has been carefully enacted by civil law, but more especially by the law of God. So much the more detestable, then, is the wickedness of the Pope, who, laying aside all respect, either for Divine or human laws, has been so daring as to free children from the yoke of subjection to their parents. It is of importance, however, to mark the reason. This, says he, is on account of the dignity of the sacrament. Not to speak of the ignorance of making marriage a sacrament, what honor is there, I beseech you, or what dignity, when, contrary to the general feeling of propriety in all nations, and contrary to God’s eternal appointment, they take off all restraints from the lusts of young persons, that they may, without any feeling of shame, sport themselves, 448 under pretense of its being a sacrament? Let us know, therefore, that in disposing of children in marriage, the authority of parents is of first-rate importance, provided they do not tyrannically abuse it, as even the civil laws restrict it. 449 The Apostle, too, in requiring exemption from necessity, 450 intimated that the deliberations of parents ought to be regulated with a view to the advantage of their children. Let us bear in mind, therefore, that this limitation is the proper rule — that children allow themselves to be governed by their parents, and that they, on the other hand, do not drag their children by force to what is against their inclination, and that they have no other object in view, in the exercise of their authority, than the advantage of their children.

Calvin: 1Co 7:38 - -- 38.Therefore he that giveth in marriage Here we have the conclusion from both parts of the statement, in which he states, in a few words, that parent...

38.Therefore he that giveth in marriage Here we have the conclusion from both parts of the statement, in which he states, in a few words, that parents are free from blame if they give away their daughters in marriage, while he at the same time declares that they do better if they keep them at home unmarried. You are not, however, to understand that celibacy is here preferred to marriage, otherwise than under the exception which was a little before expressed. For if power be wanting on the part of the daughter, 451 the father acts an exceedingly bad part if he endeavors to keep her back from marriage, and would be no longer a father to her, but a cruel tyrant. The sum of the whole discussion amounts to this — that celibacy is better than marriage, because it has more liberty, so that persons can serve God with greater freedom; but at the same time, that no necessity ought to be imposed, so as to make it unlawful for individuals to marry, if they think proper; and farther, that marriage itself is a remedy appointed by God for our infirmity, 452 which all ought to use that are not endowed with the gift of continency. Every person of sound judgment will join with me in acknowledging and confessing, that the whole of Paul’s doctrine on this point is comprehended in these three articles.

Calvin: 1Co 7:39 - -- 39.The wife is bound He had previously spoken indiscriminately of husbands and wives, but as wives, on account of the modesty of their sex, might see...

39.The wife is bound He had previously spoken indiscriminately of husbands and wives, but as wives, on account of the modesty of their sex, might seem to have less liberty, he has thought it necessary to give in addition some special directions in reference to them. He now, therefore, teaches that women are not less at liberty than men to marry a second time, on their becoming widows. 453 We have already mentioned above, that those who desired a second marriage were branded with the reproach of intemperance, and that, with the view of putting some kind of slight upon them, those who had been contented with being once married, were wont to be presented with the “chaplet of chastity.” Nay more, this first opinion had, in course of time, become prevalent among Christians; for second marriages had no blessing pronounced upon them, and some Councils prohibited the clergy from being present on such occasions. The Apostle here condemns tyranny of that sort, and declares, that no hindrance ought to be thrown in the way of widows’ marrying, if they think proper.

It is of little consequence, and so far as the sense is concerned it matters nothing, whether we say that the wife is bound legi , ( to the law,) in the dative, or lege , ( by the law,) in the ablative. For it is the law that declares the connection between husband and wife to be indissoluble. If, however, you read it in the dative, the term will convey the idea of authority or obligation. 454 Now he reasons from contraries; for if a woman is bound to her husband for life, she is, then, set at liberty by his death. After she has been set at liberty, let her be married to whom she will

When the verb to sleep means to die, 455 it refers not to the soul, but to the body, as is manifest from its constant use in Scripture. 456 It is a foolish part, therefore, that is acted by certain fanatics, who, from this little word, make it their endeavor to prove that the souls of men, after being separated from their bodies, are destitute of thought and intelligence, or, in other words, of their life.

Only in the Lord This is thought to be added for the purpose of admonishing them in passing, that they ought not to yoke themselves with the irreligious, or to covet their society. This, I acknowledge, is true, but I am of opinion that more is meant that they should do this in a religious way, and in the fear of the Lord, 457 for it is in this manner that marriages are formed auspiciously.

Calvin: 1Co 7:40 - -- 40.But she is happier if she so abide Why? Is it because widowhood is of itself a virtue? No; but because it will have less to distract, and is more ...

40.But she is happier if she so abide Why? Is it because widowhood is of itself a virtue? No; but because it will have less to distract, and is more exempt from earthly cares. As to what he adds — according to my judgment, he does not mean by this expression that his opinion was doubtful; but it is as if he had said that such was his decision as to this question; for he immediately adds that he has the Spirit of God, which is sufficient to give full and perfect authority. There appears, at the same time, to be somewhat of irony when he says I think For as the false apostles were ever and anon boasting in high-sounding terms of their having the Spirit of God, for the purpose of arrogating to themselves authority, and in the meantime endeavored to derogate from that of Paul, he says that he thinks that he is not less a partaker of the Spirit than they

Defender: 1Co 7:6 - -- The "permission" given Paul was obviously from the Lord, since no one was above Paul in terms of apostolic authority. Thus, he was claiming - not deny...

The "permission" given Paul was obviously from the Lord, since no one was above Paul in terms of apostolic authority. Thus, he was claiming - not denying - divine inspiration. He did not have an explicit "commandment" to cite for this teaching, either from the Mosaic law or the teachings of Christ, but rather had direct divine authorization."

Defender: 1Co 7:10 - -- In this case, Paul was not citing his own divinely-inspired authority for his teaching (as in 1Co 7:6 and 1Co 7:12), but to a specific teaching of Scr...

In this case, Paul was not citing his own divinely-inspired authority for his teaching (as in 1Co 7:6 and 1Co 7:12), but to a specific teaching of Scripture (Gen 2:24; Mat 19:3-6). The Lord had already established and commanded the marriage relation to be permanent."

Defender: 1Co 7:12 - -- Again Paul is claiming, not disclaiming, divine authority for his teaching. In fact, he is even boldly superseding a command given by God through Ezra...

Again Paul is claiming, not disclaiming, divine authority for his teaching. In fact, he is even boldly superseding a command given by God through Ezra to the Jews. After returning from their captivity in Babylon, the Jews had taken wives from the unbelieving people of the land, and God told them: "Separate yourselves from the people of the land, and from the strange [foreign] wives" (Ezr 10:11). In the Christian context, however, a Christian is commanded not to divorce a non-Christian spouse, as long as the latter is willing to remain in the marriage."

Defender: 1Co 7:14 - -- If one member of the marriage is a believer, then he or she has been "sanctified" - that is, "set apart" in a special relation - unto God. By that ver...

If one member of the marriage is a believer, then he or she has been "sanctified" - that is, "set apart" in a special relation - unto God. By that very fact, then both the unbelieving spouse and the children have also been "set apart," inevitably sharing some of the blessings that God promises the believing partner. The most obvious such blessing is the greater possibility that the children, as well as the non-Christian spouse, will be won to Christ by the believing spouse (1Co 7:16)."

Defender: 1Co 7:15 - -- If the unbelieving husband or wife chooses to leave the relationship, there remains nothing the believer can do. The Christian spouse should remain un...

If the unbelieving husband or wife chooses to leave the relationship, there remains nothing the believer can do. The Christian spouse should remain unmarried (1Co 7:11) as long as there is any possibility of reconciliation. Otherwise he or she "is not under bondage" - that is, no longer bound by the law to remain with the other spouse. The situation seems analogous to that in which one partner dies. "If the husband be dead, she is loosed from the law of her husband ... so that she is no adulteress, though she be married to another man" (Rom 7:2, Rom 7:3). Once the ex-husband or ex-wife marries another, then the previous marriage relation is as permanently severed as if it had been severed by death, with no further possibility of reconciliation. When that becomes the case, it seems plain that there is no further "bondage" of any sort, so that the believer is free to remarry - but only "in the Lord" (1Co 7:39)."

Defender: 1Co 7:25 - -- There had been no previous commandment specifically concerning virgins, except to refrain from fornication, so Paul gives his own inspired judgment (1...

There had been no previous commandment specifically concerning virgins, except to refrain from fornication, so Paul gives his own inspired judgment (1Co 7:40). Before giving his advice concerning virgins, however, he points out that the imminent "distress" (1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:29) - possibly referring to the soon-coming severe persecutions of Christians by the Romans - would indicate that it might be better to remain unmarried, even though getting married was certainly no sin (1Co 7:28)."

Defender: 1Co 7:36 - -- This evidently is a reference to the virgin's father, who normally determined when, and to whom, his daughter would marry (1Co 7:38)."

This evidently is a reference to the virgin's father, who normally determined when, and to whom, his daughter would marry (1Co 7:38)."

TSK: 1Co 7:6 - -- by : 1Co 7:12, 1Co 7:25; 2Co 8:8, 2Co 11:17

TSK: 1Co 7:7 - -- I would : St. Paul evidently gave this advice in reference to the necessities of the church, or what he calls (1Co 7:26) the present distress; for it ...

I would : St. Paul evidently gave this advice in reference to the necessities of the church, or what he calls (1Co 7:26) the present distress; for it would be perfectly absurd to imagine that an inspired apostle would in the general, discountenance marriage, since it was of the greatest importance to the existence and happiness of future generations, and expressly agreeable to a Divine institution. 1Co 9:5, 1Co 9:15; Act 26:29

But : 1Co 12:11; Mat 19:11, Mat 19:12

TSK: 1Co 7:8 - -- 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:27, 1Co 7:32, 1Co 7:34, 1Co 7:35

TSK: 1Co 7:9 - -- let : 1Co 7:2, 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:36, 1Co 7:39; 1Ti 5:11, 1Ti 5:14

TSK: 1Co 7:10 - -- yet : 1Co 7:12, 1Co 7:25, 1Co 7:40 Let : 1Co 7:15; Jer 3:20; Mal 2:14-16; Mat 5:32, Mat 19:6-9; Mar 10:11, Mar 10:12; Luk 16:18

TSK: 1Co 7:11 - -- or : Jdg 19:2, Jdg 19:3; Jer 3:1 and let : Deu 22:19; Isa 50:1; Mar 10:2

TSK: 1Co 7:12 - -- speak : 1Co 7:6, 1Co 7:25; 2Co 11:17 If : Ezr 10:2, Ezr 10:3, Ezr 10:11-19

TSK: 1Co 7:14 - -- the unbelieving husband : 1Co 6:15-17; Ezr 9:1, Ezr 9:2; 1Ti 4:5; Tit 1:15 else : Ezr 9:2; Isa 52:1; Mal 2:15, Mal 2:16; Act 10:23; Rom 11:16

TSK: 1Co 7:15 - -- A brother : Mat 12:50; Jam 2:15 but : 1Co 14:33; Rom 12:18, Rom 14:19; 2Co 13:11; Gal 5:22; Heb 12:14; Jam 3:17, Jam 3:18 to peace : Gr. in peace

A brother : Mat 12:50; Jam 2:15

but : 1Co 14:33; Rom 12:18, Rom 14:19; 2Co 13:11; Gal 5:22; Heb 12:14; Jam 3:17, Jam 3:18

to peace : Gr. in peace

TSK: 1Co 7:16 - -- O wife : 1Co 9:22; Pro 11:30; Luk 15:10; 1Ti 4:16; Jam 5:19, Jam 5:20; 1Pe 3:1, 1Pe 3:2 how : Gr. what

TSK: 1Co 7:17 - -- as God : 1Co 7:7; Mat 19:12; Rom 12:3-8; 1Pe 4:10,1Pe 4:11 as the : 1Co 7:18, 1Co 7:20,1Co 7:21, 1Co 7:24 so ordain : 1Co 4:17, 1Co 16:1; 2Co 11:28

TSK: 1Co 7:18 - -- being : Act 15:1, Act 15:5, Act 15:19, Act 15:24, Act 15:28; Gal 5:1-3; Col 3:11

TSK: 1Co 7:19 - -- Circumcision : 1Co 8:8; Rom 2:25-29, Rom 3:30; Gal 5:6, Gal 6:15 but : 1Sa 15:22; Jer 7:22, Jer 7:23; Mat 5:19; Joh 15:14; 1Jo 2:3, 1Jo 2:4, 1Jo 3:22-...

TSK: 1Co 7:20 - -- abide : 1Co 7:17, 1Co 7:21-23; Pro 27:8; Luk 3:10-14; 1Th 4:11; 2Th 3:12

TSK: 1Co 7:21 - -- being : 1Co 12:13; Gal 3:28; Col 3:11; 1Ti 6:1-3; 1Pe 2:18-24 a servant : Rather, a slave, δουλος [Strong’ s G1401], the property of ano...

being : 1Co 12:13; Gal 3:28; Col 3:11; 1Ti 6:1-3; 1Pe 2:18-24

a servant : Rather, a slave, δουλος [Strong’ s G1401], the property of another, and bought with his money. In these verses the apostle shows that Christianity makes no change in our civil connections.

care : Luk 10:40, Luk 10:41, Luk 12:29 *marg. Luk 21:34; Phi 4:6, Phi 4:11; Heb 13:5; 1Pe 5:7

TSK: 1Co 7:22 - -- is the : Luk 1:74, Luk 1:75; Joh 8:32-36; Rom 6:18-22; Gal 5:1, Gal 5:13; Eph 6:5, Eph 6:6; Col 3:22-24; Phm 1:16; 1Pe 2:16 freeman : Gr. made free is...

TSK: 1Co 7:23 - -- are : 1Co 6:20; Lev 25:42; Act 20:28; Tit 2:14; 1Pe 1:18, 1Pe 1:19, 1Pe 3:18; Rev 5:9 be : Mat 23:8-11; Gal 2:4

TSK: 1Co 7:24 - -- let : 1Co 7:17, 1Co 7:20 abide : 1Co 10:31; Gen 5:22-24, Gen 17:1; 1Sa 14:45; Col 3:23, Col 3:24

TSK: 1Co 7:25 - -- concerning : 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:34, 1Co 7:36-38; Psa 78:63 virgins : The word παρθενος [Strong’ s G3933], as well as the Latin virgo "...

concerning : 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:34, 1Co 7:36-38; Psa 78:63

virgins : The word παρθενος [Strong’ s G3933], as well as the Latin virgo ""a virgin,""though it generally signifies a maid, frequently denotes unmarried persons of both sexes; in which sense it is evidently used here by the apostle.

have : 1Co 7:6, 1Co 7:10,1Co 7:12, 1Co 7:40; 2Co 8:8-10, 2Co 11:17

obtained : 1Co 4:2, 1Co 15:10; 2Co 2:17, 2Co 4:1, 2Co 4:2; 1Ti 1:12-16

TSK: 1Co 7:26 - -- that : 1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:35-38; Jer 16:2-4; Mat 24:19; Luk 21:23, Luk 23:28, Luk 23:29; 1Pe 4:17 distress : or, necessity

TSK: 1Co 7:27 - -- thou bound : 1Co 7:12-14, 1Co 7:20

thou bound : 1Co 7:12-14, 1Co 7:20

TSK: 1Co 7:28 - -- thou hast : 1Co 7:36; Heb 13:4 Nevertheless : 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:32-34 but : 1Co 7:35; 2Co 1:23

thou hast : 1Co 7:36; Heb 13:4

Nevertheless : 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:32-34

but : 1Co 7:35; 2Co 1:23

TSK: 1Co 7:29 - -- the time : Job 14:1, Job 14:2; Psa 39:4-7, Psa 90:5-10, Psa 103:15, Psa 103:16; Ecc 6:12, Ecc 9:10; Rom 13:11, Rom 13:12; Heb 13:13, Heb 13:14; 1Pe 4:...

TSK: 1Co 7:30 - -- that weep : Psa 30:5, Psa 126:5, Psa 126:6; Ecc 3:4; Isa 25:8, Isa 30:19; Luk 6:21, Luk 6:25, Luk 16:25; Joh 16:22; Rev 7:17, Rev 18:7

TSK: 1Co 7:31 - -- use : 1Co 9:18; Ecc 2:24, Ecc 2:25, Ecc 3:12, Ecc 3:13, Ecc 5:18-20, Ecc 9:7-10, Ecc 11:2, Ecc 11:9, Ecc 11:10; Mat 24:48-50; Matt. 25:14-29; Luk 12:1...

use : 1Co 9:18; Ecc 2:24, Ecc 2:25, Ecc 3:12, Ecc 3:13, Ecc 5:18-20, Ecc 9:7-10, Ecc 11:2, Ecc 11:9, Ecc 11:10; Mat 24:48-50; Matt. 25:14-29; Luk 12:15-21, Luk 16:1, Luk 16:2, Luk 19:17-26, Luk 21:34; 1Ti 6:17, 1Ti 6:18; Jam 5:1-5

for : Psa 39:6, Psa 73:20; Ecc 1:4; Jam 1:10,Jam 1:11, Jam 4:14; 1Pe 1:24, 1Pe 4:7; 1Jo 2:17

the fashion : Το [Strong’ s G3588], σχημα [Strong’ s G4976], the form or appearance. Grotius remarks that the apostle’ s expression is borrowed from the theatre, where το [Strong’ s G3588], σχημα [Strong’ s G4976], της σκηνης [Strong’ s G4633], παραγει means that the scene changes, and presents an appearance entirely new.

TSK: 1Co 7:32 - -- I would : Psa 55:22; Mat 6:25-34, Mat 13:22; Phi 4:6 He that : 1Ti 5:5 that belong to the Lord : Gr. of the Lord, as, 1Co 7:34

I would : Psa 55:22; Mat 6:25-34, Mat 13:22; Phi 4:6

He that : 1Ti 5:5

that belong to the Lord : Gr. of the Lord, as, 1Co 7:34

TSK: 1Co 7:33 - -- careth : Neh 5:1-5; Luk 12:22; 1Th 4:11, 1Th 4:12; 1Ti 5:8 how : 1Co 7:3; 1Sa 1:4-8; Eph 5:25-33; Col 3:19; 1Pe 3:7

TSK: 1Co 7:34 - -- careth : Luk 2:36, Luk 2:37; 2Co 7:11, 2Co 7:12, 2Co 8:16, 2Co 11:28; 1Ti 3:5; Tit 3:8 both : 1Co 6:20; Rom 6:13, Rom 12:1, Rom 12:2; Phi 1:20; 1Th 5:...

TSK: 1Co 7:35 - -- not : This is an allusion to the Retiarius among the Romans, who carried a small casting net, rete which he endeavoured to throw over his advers...

not : This is an allusion to the Retiarius among the Romans, who carried a small casting net, rete which he endeavoured to throw over his adversary’ s head. 1Co 7:2, 1Co 7:5-9, 1Co 7:28, 1Co 7:36; Mat 19:12

comely : 1Co 7:36; Eph 5:3; Phi 4:8; 1Ti 1:10; Tit 2:3

and that : 1Co 7:33, 1Co 7:34; Luk 8:14, Luk 10:40-42, Luk 21:34

TSK: 1Co 7:36 - -- his virgin : Some interpret this of a man’ s continuing in a state of celibacy, and render παρθενος [Strong’ s G3933], not a virg...

his virgin : Some interpret this of a man’ s continuing in a state of celibacy, and render παρθενος [Strong’ s G3933], not a virgin, but virginity; but such a construction of the original appears without example. It appears most obvious to explain it of a parent, or guardian, who had the charge of a virgin; and Kypke has shown that την παρθενον αυτου [Strong’ s G847] is an elegant phrase for his virgin daughter.

the flower : 1Sa 2:33

and need : 1Co 7:9, 1Co 7:37

he sinneth : 1Co 7:28

TSK: 1Co 7:38 - -- then : 1Co 7:28 doeth well : 1Co 7:2; Heb 13:4 doeth better : 1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:32-34, 1Co 7:37

then : 1Co 7:28

doeth well : 1Co 7:2; Heb 13:4

doeth better : 1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:32-34, 1Co 7:37

TSK: 1Co 7:39 - -- wife : 1Co 7:10,1Co 7:15; Rom 7:2, Rom 7:3 only : Gen 6:2; Deu 7:3, Deu 7:4; Mal 2:11; 2Co 6:14-16

TSK: 1Co 7:40 - -- she : 1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:35 I think : Rather, ""I judge (or consider) also that I have the Spirit of God;""for δοκειν is frequ...

she : 1Co 7:1, 1Co 7:8, 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:35

I think : Rather, ""I judge (or consider) also that I have the Spirit of God;""for δοκειν is frequently used to express not what is doubtful, but what is true and certain. 1Co 7:25, 1Co 9:1-3, 1Co 14:36, 1Co 14:37; 2Co 10:8-10, 2Co 12:11; 1Th 4:8; 2Pe 3:15, 2Pe 3:16

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per Verse)

Barnes: 1Co 7:6 - -- But I speak this by permission ... - It is not quite certain whether the word "this"( τοῦτο touto ), in this verse, refers to what p...

But I speak this by permission ... - It is not quite certain whether the word "this"( τοῦτο touto ), in this verse, refers to what precedes, or to what follows. On this commentators are divided. The more natural and obvious interpretation would be to refer it to the preceding statement. I am inclined to think that the mare natural construction is the true one. and that Paul refers to what he had said in 1Co 7:5. Most recent commentators, as Macknight and Rosenmuller, however, suppose it refers to what follows, and appeal to similar places in Joe 1:2; Psa 49:2; 1Co 10:23. Calvin supposes it refers to what was said in 1Co 7:1.

By permission - συγγνώμην sungnōmēn . This word means "indulgence,"or "permission,"and stands opposed to that which is expressly enjoined; compare 1Co 7:25. "I am ‘ allowed’ to say this; I have no express command on the subject; I give it as my opinion; I do not speak it directly under the influence of divine inspiration;"see 1Co 7:10, 1Co 7:25, 1Co 7:40. Paul here does not claim to be under inspiration in these directions which he specifics. But this is no argument against his inspiration in general, but rather the contrary. For:

(1) It shows that he was an honest man, and was disposed to state the exact truth. An impostor, pretending to inspiration, would have claimed to have been always inspired. Who ever heard of a pretender to divine inspiration admitting that in any thing he was not under divine guidance? Did Mahomet ever do this? Do impostors now ever do it?

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t shows that in other cases, where no exception is made, he claimed to be inspired. These few exceptions, which he expressly makes, prove that in everywhere else he claimed to be under the influence of inspiration.

\caps1 (3) w\caps0 e are to suppose, therefore, that in all his writings where he makes no express exceptions, (and the exceptions are very few in number,) Paul claimed to be inspired. Macknight, however, and some others, understand this as mere adVice, as an inspired man, though not as a command,

Not of commandment - Not by express instruction from the Lord; see 1Co 7:25. I do not claim in this to be under the influence of inspiration; and my counsel here may be regarded, or not, as you may be able to receive it.

Barnes: 1Co 7:7 - -- For I would ... - I would prefer. That all men ... - That Paul was unmarried is evident from 1Co 9:5. But he does not refer to this fact ...

For I would ... - I would prefer.

That all men ... - That Paul was unmarried is evident from 1Co 9:5. But he does not refer to this fact here. When he wishes that all people were like himself, he evidently does not intend that he would prefer that all should be unmarried, for this would be against the divine institution, and against his own precepts elsewhere. But he would be glad if all people had control over their passions and propensities as he had; had the gift of continence, and could abstain from marriage when circumstances of trial, etc., would make it proper. We may add, that when Paul wishes to exhort to anything that is difficult, he usually adduces "his own example"to show that "it may be done;"an example which it would be well for all ministers to be able to follow.

But every man hath his proper gift - Every man has his own special talent, or excellence. One man excels in one thing, and another in another. One may not have this particular virtue, but he maybe distinguished for another virtue quite as valuable. The doctrine here is, therefore, that we are not to judge of others by ourselves, or measure their virtue by ours. We may excel in some one thing, they in another. And because they have not our special virtue, or capability, we are not to condemn or denounce them; compare Mat 19:11, Mat 19:12.

Of God - Bestowed by God either in the original endowments and faculties of body or mind, or by his grace. In either case it is the gift of God. The virtue of continence is his gift as well as any other; and Paul had reason, as any other man must have, to be thankful that God had conferred it on him. So if a man is naturally amiable, kind, gentle, large-hearted, tender, and affectionate, he should regard it as the gift of God, and be thankful that he has not to contend with the evils of a morose, proud, haughty, and severe temper. It is true, however, that all these virtues may be greatly strengthened by discipline, and that religion gives vigor and comeliness to them all. Paul’ s virtue in this was strengthened by his resolution; by his manner of life; by his frequent fastings and trials, and "by the abundant employment"which God gave him in the apostleship. And it is true still, that if a man is desirous to overcome the lusts of the flesh, industry, and hardship, and trial, and self-denial will enable him, by the grace of God, to do it. idleness is the cause of no small part of the corrupt desires of people; and God kept Paul from these:

(1)    By giving him enough to do; and,

(2)    By giving him enough to suffer.

Barnes: 1Co 7:8 - -- It is good for them - It may be advisable, in the present circumstances of persecution and distress, not to be encumbered with the cares and an...

It is good for them - It may be advisable, in the present circumstances of persecution and distress, not to be encumbered with the cares and anxieties of a family; see 1Co 7:26, 1Co 7:32-34. The word unmarried ( ἀγάμοις agamois ) may refer either to those who had never been married, or to widowers. It here means simply those who were at that time unmarried, and his reasoning applies to both classes.

And to widows - The apostle specifies these, though he had not specified "widowers"particularly. The reason of this distinction seems to be, that he considers more particularly the case of those females who had never been married, in the close of the chapter, 1Co 7:25.

That they abide - That they remain, in the present circumstances, unmarried; see 1Co 7:26.

Barnes: 1Co 7:9 - -- But if they cannot contain - If they have not the gift of continence; if they cannot be secure against temptation; if they have not strength of...

But if they cannot contain - If they have not the gift of continence; if they cannot be secure against temptation; if they have not strength of virtue enough to preserve them from the danger of sin, and of bringing reproach and scandal on the church.

It is better - It is to be preferred.

Than to burn - The passion here referred to is often compared to a fire; see Virgil, Aeneas 4:68. It is better to marry, even with all the inconveniences attending the marriage life in a time of distress and persecution in the church 1Co 7:26, than to be the prey of raging, consuming, and exciting passions.

Barnes: 1Co 7:10 - -- And unto the married - This verse commences the second subject of inquiry; to wit, whether it was proper, in the existing state of things, for ...

And unto the married - This verse commences the second subject of inquiry; to wit, whether it was proper, in the existing state of things, for those who were married to continue this relation, or whether they ought to separate. The reasons why any may have supposed that it was best to separate, may have been:

(1)    That their troubles and persecutions might be such that they might judge it best that families should be broken up; and,

(2)    Probably many supposed that it was unlawful for a Christian wife or husband to be connected at all with a pagan and an idolater.

I command, yet not I, but the Lord - Not I so much as the Lord. This injunction is not to be understood as adVice merely, but as a solemn, divine command, from which you are not at liberty to depart. Paul here professes to utter the language of inspiration, and demands obedience. The express command of "the Lord"to which he refers, is probably the precept recorded in Mat 5:32, and Mat 19:3-10. These precepts of Christ asserted that the marriage tie was sacred and inviolable.

Let not the wife depart ... - Let her not prove faithless to her marriage vows; let her not, on any pretence, desert her husband. Though she is a Christian. and he is not, yet let her not seek, on that account, to be separate from him - The law of Moses did not permit a wife to divorce herself from her husband, though it was sometimes done (compare Mat 10:12); but the Greek and Roman laws allowed it - Grotius. But Paul here refers to a formal and legal separation before the magistrates, and not to a voluntary separation, without intending to be formally divorced. The reasons for this opinion are:

(1) That such divorces were known and practiced among both Jews and pagans.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t was important to settle the question whether they were to be allowed in the Christian church.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 he claim would be set up, probably, that it might be done.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he question whether a "voluntary separation"might not be proper, where one party was a Christian, and the other not, he discusses in the following verses, 1Co 7:12-17. Here, therefore, he solemnly repeats the law of Christ, that divorce, under the Christian economy, was not to be in the power either of the husband or wife.

Barnes: 1Co 7:11 - -- But and if she depart - If she have withdrawn by a rash and foolish act; if she has attempted to dissolve the marriage vow, she is to remain un...

But and if she depart - If she have withdrawn by a rash and foolish act; if she has attempted to dissolve the marriage vow, she is to remain unmarried, or be reconciled. She is not at liberty to marry another. This may refer, I suppose, to instances where wives, ignorant of the rule of Christ, and supposing that they had a right to separate themselves from their husbands, had rashly left them, and had supposed that the marriage contract was dissolved. Paul tells them that this was impossible; and that if they had so separated from their husbands, the pure laws of Christianity, did not recognize this right, and they must either be reconciled to their husbands, or remain alone. The marriage tie was so sacred that it could not be dissolved by the will of either party.

Let her remain unmarried - That is, let her not marry another.

Or be reconciled to her husband - Let this be done, if possible. If it cannot be, let her remain unmarried. It was a duty to be reconciled if it was possible. If not, she should not violate her vows to her husband so far as to marry another. It is evident that this rule is still binding, and that no one who has separated from her husband, whatever be the cause, unless there be a regular divorce, according to the law of Christ Mat 5:32, can be at liberty to marry again.

And let not the husband - See the note at Mat 5:32. This right, granted under the Jewish law, and practiced among all the pagan, was to be taken away wholly under the gospel. The marriage tie was to be regarded as sacred; and the tyranny of man over woman was to cease.

Barnes: 1Co 7:12 - -- But to the rest - "I have spoken in regard to the duties of the unmarried, and the question whether it is right and advisable that they should ...

But to the rest - "I have spoken in regard to the duties of the unmarried, and the question whether it is right and advisable that they should marry, 1Co 7:1-9. I have also uttered the command of the Lord in regard to those who are married, and the question whether separation and divorce were proper. Now in regard to "the rest of the person’ s and cases"referred to, I will deliver my opinion.""The rest,"or remainder, here referred to, relates particularly to the cases in which one party was a Christian and the other not. In the previous verses he had delivered the solemn, explicit law of Christ, that divorce was to take place on neither side, and in no instance, except agreeably. to the law of Christ; Mat 5:32. That was settled by divine authority. In the subsequent verses he discusses a different question; whether a "voluntary separation"was not advisable and proper when the one party was a Christian and the other not. The word "rest"refers to these instances, and the questions which would arise under this inquiry.

Not the Lord - See the note at 1Co 7:6. "I do not claim, in this advice, to be under the influence of inspiration; I have no express command on the subject from the Lord; but I deliver my opinion as a servant of the Lord 1Co 7:40, and as having a right to offer advice, even when I have no express command from God, to a church which I have founded, and which has consulted me on the subject."This was a case in which both he and they were to follow the principles of Christian prudence and propriety, when there was no express commandment. Many such cases may occur. But few, perhaps none, can occur, in which some Christian principle shall not be found, that will be sufficient to direct the anxious inquirer after truth and duty.

If any brother - Any Christian.

That believeth not - That is not a Christian; one who is a pagan.

And if she be pleased - If it seems best to her; if she consents; approves of living together still. There might be many cases where the wife or the husband, that was not a Christian, would be so opposed to Christianity, and so violent in their opposition, that they would not be willing to live with a Christian. When this was the case, the Christian husband or wife could not prevent the separation. When this was not the case, they were not to seek a separation themselves.

To dwell with him - To remain in connection with him as his wife, though they differed on the subject of religion.

Let him not put her away - Though she is a pagan, though opposed to his religion, yet the marriage vow is sacred and inviolable. It is not to be sundered by any change which can take place in the opinions of either party. It is evident that if a man were at liberty to dissolve the marriage tie, or to discard his wife when his own opinions were changed on the subject of religion, that it would at once destroy all the sacredness of the marriage union, and render it a nullity. Even, therefore, when there is a difference of opinion on the vital subject of religion, the tie is not dissolved; but the only effect of religion should be, to make the converted husband or wife more tender, kind, affectionate, and faithful than they were before; and all the more so as their partners are without the hopes of the gospel, and as they may be won to love the Saviour, 1Co 7:16.

Barnes: 1Co 7:13 - -- Let her not leave him - A change of phraseology from the last verse, to suit the circumstances. The wife did not have power to "put away"the hu...

Let her not leave him - A change of phraseology from the last verse, to suit the circumstances. The wife did not have power to "put away"the husband, and expel him from his own home; but she might think it her duty to be separated from him. The apostle counsels her not to do this; and this advice should still be followed. She should still love her husband and seek his welfare; she should be still a kind, affectionate, and faithful wife; and all the more so that she may show him the excellence of religion, and win him to love it. She should even bear much, and bear it long; nor should she leave him unless her life is rendered miserable, or in danger; or unless he wholly neglects to make provision for her, and leaves her to suffering, to want, and to tears. In such a case no precept of religion forbids her to return to her father’ s house, or to seek a place of safety and of comfort. But even then it is not to be a separation on account of a difference of religious sentiment, but for brutal treatment. Even then the marriage tie is not dissolved, and neither party is at liberty to marry again.

Barnes: 1Co 7:14 - -- For the unbelieving husband - The husband that is not a Christian; who still remains a pagan, or an impenitent man. The apostle here states rea...

For the unbelieving husband - The husband that is not a Christian; who still remains a pagan, or an impenitent man. The apostle here states reasons why a separation should not take place when there was a difference of religion between the husband and the wife. The first is, that the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the believing wife. And the object of this statement seems to be, to meet an objection which might exist in the mind, and which might, perhaps, be urged by some. "Shall I not be polluted by such a connection? Shall I not be defiled, in the eye of God, by living in a close union with a pagan, a sinner, an enemy of God, and an opposer of the gospel?"This objection was natural, and is, doubtless, often felt. To this the apostle replies, "No; the contrary may he true. The connection produces a species of sanctification, or diffuses a kind of holiness over the unbelieving party by the believing party, so far as to render their children holy, and therefore it is improper to seek for a separation."

Is sanctified - ἡγίασται hēgiastai . There has been a great variety of opinions in regard to the sense of this word. It does not comport with my design to state these opinions. The usual meaning of the word is, to make holy; to set apart to a sacred use; to consecrate, etc; see the note at Joh 17:17. But the expression cannot mean here:

(1) That the unbelieving husband would become holy, or be a Christian, "by the mere fact"of a connection "with"a Christian, for this would be to do violence to the words, and would be contrary to facts everywhere; nor,

(2) That the unbelieving husband had been sanctified by the Christian wife (Whitby), for this would not be true in all cases; nor,

(3) That the unbelieving husband would gradually become more favorably inclined to Christianity, by observing its effects on the wife (according to Semler); for, though this might be true, yet the apostle was speaking of something then, and which rendered their children at that time holy; nor,

(4) That the unbelieving husband might more easily be sanctified, or become a Christian, by being connected with a Christian wife (according to Rosenmuller and Schleusner), because he is speaking of something in the connection which made the children holy; and because the word ἁγιάζω hagiazō is not used in this sense elsewhere. But it is a good rule of interpretation, that the words which are used in any place are to be limited in their signification by the connection; and all that we are required to understand here is, that the unbelieving husband was sanctified "in regard to the subject under discussion;"that is, in regard to the question whether it was proper for them to live together, or whether they should be separated or not. And the sense may be, "They are by the marriage tie one flesh. They are indissolubly united by the ordinance of God. As they are one by his appointment, as they have received his sanction to the marriage union, and as one of them is holy, so the other is to be regarded as sanctified, or made so holy by the divine sanction to the union, that it is proper for them to live together in the marriage relation."And in proof of this, Paul says if it were not so, if the connection was to he regarded as impure and abominable, then their children were to be esteemed as illegitimate and unclean. But now they were not so regarded, and could not so be; and hence, it followed that they might lawfully continue together. So Calvin, Beza, and Doddridge interpret the expression.

Else were your children unclean - ( ἀκάθαρτα akatharta ). Impure; the opposite of what is meant by holy. Here observe:

(1)    That this is a reason why the parents, one of whom was a Christian and the other not, should not be separated; and,

(2)    The reason is founded on the fact, that if they were separated, the offspring of such a union must be regarded as illegitimate, or unholy; and,

(3)    It must be improper to separate in such a way, and for such a reason, because even they did not believe, and could not believe, that their children were defiled, and polluted, and subject to the shame and disgrace attending illegitimate children.

This passage has often been interpreted, and is often adduced to prove that children are "federally holy,"and that they are entitled to the privilege of baptism on the ground of the faith of one of the parents. But against this interpretation there are insuperable objections:

(1) The phrase "federally holy"is unintelligible, and conveys no idea to the great mass of people. It occurs no where in the Scriptures, and what can be meant by it?

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 t does not accord with the scope and design of the argument. There is not one word about baptism here; not one allusion to it; nor does the argument in the remotest degree hear upon it. The question was not whether children should be baptized, but it was whether there should be a separation between man and wife, where the one was a Christian and the other not. Paul states, that if such a separation should take place, it would imply that the marriage was improper; and of course the children must be regarded as unclean. But how would the supposition that they were federally holy, and the proper subjects of baptism, bear on this? Would it not be equally true that it was proper to baptize the children whether the parents were separated or not? Is it not a doctrine among Pedobaptists everywhere, that the children are entitled to baptism upon the faith of either of the parents, and that that doctrine is not affected by the question here agitated by Paul? Whether it was proper for them to live together or not, was it not equally true that the child of a believing parent was to be baptized? But,

(3) The supposition that this means that the children would be regarded as illegitimate if such a separation should take place, is one that accords with the whole scope and design of the argument. "When one party is a Christian and the other not shall there be a separation?"This was the question. "No,"says Paul; if there is such a separation, it must be because the marriage is improper; because it would be wrong to live together in such circumstances. What would follow from this? Why, that all the children that have been born since the one party became a Christian, must be regarded as having been born while a connection existed that was improper, and unChristian, and unlawful, and of course they must be regarded as illegitimate. But, says he, you do not believe this yourselves. It follows, therefore, that the connection, even according to your own views, is proper.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 his accords with the meaning of the word unclean ( ἀκάθαρτα akatharta ). It properly denotes that which is impure, defiled, idolatrous, unclean:

(a)    In a Levitical sense; Lev 5:2.

(b)    In a moral sense. Act 10:28; 2Co 6:17; Eph 5:5.

The word will appropriately express the sense of illegitimacy; and the argument, I think, evidently requires this. It may be summed up in a few words. "Your separation would be a proclamation to all that you regard the marriage as invalid and improper. From this it would follow that the offspring of such a marriage would be illegitimate. But you are not prepared to admit this; you do not believe it. Your children which you esteem to be legitimate, and they are so. The marriage tie, therefore, should be regarded as binding, and separation unnecessary and improper."See, however, Doddridge and Bloomfield for a different view of this subject - I believe infant baptism to be proper and right, and an inestimable privilege to parents and to children. But a good cause should not be made to rest on feeble supports, nor upon forced and unnatural interpretations of the Scriptures. And such I regard the usual interpretation placed on this passage.

But now are they holy - Holy in the same sense as the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the believing wife; for different forms of the same word are usual. That is, they are legitimate. They are not to be branded and treated as bastards, as they would be by your separation. You regard them as having been born in lawful wedlock, and they are so; and they should be treated as such by their parents, and not be exposed to shame and disgrace by your separation.

The note of Dr. Doddridge, to which the author has candidly referred his readers, is here subjoined: "On the maturest and most impartial consideration of this text, I must judge it to refer to infant baptism. Nothing can be more apparent, than that the word "holy"signifies persons who might be admitted to partake of the distinguishing rites of God’ s people; compare Exo 19:6; Deu 7:6; Deu 14:2; Deu 26:19; Deu 33:3; Ezr 9:2, with Isa 35:8; Isa 52:1; Act 10:28. And as for the interpretation which so many of our brethren, the Baptists, have contended for, that "holy"signifies "legitimate,"and "unclean, illegitimate"(not to urge that this seems an unscriptural sense of the word,) nothing can be more evident than that the argument will by no means bear it; for it would be proving a thing by itself "idem peridem"to argue, that the converse of the parent’ s was lawful because the children were not bastards, whereas all who thought the converse of the parents unlawful, must think that the children were illegitimate."

The sense of the passage seems to be this: Christians are not to separate from their unconverted partners, although the Jews were commanded to put away their strange or pagan wives; because the unbelieving party is so far sanctified by the believing party, that the marriage connection is quite "lawful for Christians. There is nothing in the Christian religion that forbids it."Otherwise, argues the Apostle, your children would be unclean, just as the offspring of unequal and forbidden marriages among the Jews, was unclean, and therefore denied the privilege of circumcision; whereas your infants, as appears from their right to baptism, acknowledged in all the churches, are holy, just as the Jewish children who had a right to circumcision were holy, not "internally"but externally and legally, in consequence of their covenant relation to God. Or briefly thus - Do not separate. The marriage is quite lawful for Christians, otherwise your children could not be reckoned holy, in the sense of having a right to the seal of the covenant, that is, baptism. The argument for infant baptism is indeed incidental, but not the less strong on that account. And to say there is no allusion whatever to that subject is a mere begging of the question.

To evade this conclusion in favor of infant baptism, the Baptists have strenuously contended, that the proper sense of "holy"is legitimate or lawfully born. But,

1. The word in the original ( ἁγιος hagios ) does not in a single instance bear this sense. The question is not what sense may possibly be attached to the term, but what is its real meaning. It is on the other hand, very frequently used in the sense assigned to it by Doddridge and others.

2. According to this view (namely, of legitimacy), the apostle is made gravely to tell the Corinthians, that the marriage, in the supposed case, was lawful in a "civil sense,"a thing which they could not possibly doubt, and which must have been "equally true if both parties had been unbelieving."It is incredible that the Corinthians should wish or need to be informed on any such point? But if we call to mind what has been noticed above, concerning the command, binding the Jews to dissolve their unequal marriages, and to treat the offspring of them as unclean Ezr 10:3, we can easily imagine the Corinthians anxious to ascertain whether the Christian religion had retained any such injunction. No, says the apostle, you see your children are holy, as the children of equal or allowed marriage among the Jews were. Therefore you need have no scruples on the point; you require not to separate. Any obscurity that rests on the passage arises from inattention to the Jewish laws, and to the senses in which the Jews used the words "unclean"and "holy."In primitive times these terms, applied to children, would be readily understood, without any explanation such as is needed now.

3. As Doddridge in the above note has acutely remarked, the supposition that the apostle proves the lawfulness of the marriage in a civil sense, from the legitimacy of the children, makes him argue in a circle. The thing to be proven, and the proof, are in reality one and the same. If the Corinthians knew that their children were legitimate, how could they think of applying to Paul on a subject so simple as the legality of of their marriages. It is as if they had said, "We know that our children are legitimate. Inform us if our marriages are legal!

Barnes: 1Co 7:15 - -- But if the unbelieving depart - If they choose to leave you. Let him depart - You cannot prevent it, and you are to submit to it patientl...

But if the unbelieving depart - If they choose to leave you.

Let him depart - You cannot prevent it, and you are to submit to it patiently, and bear it as a Christian.

A brother or a sister is not under bondage ... - Many have supposed that this means that they would be at liberty to marry again when the unbelieving wife or husband had gone away; as Calvin, Grotius, Rosenmuller, etc. But this is contrary to the strain of the argument of the apostle. The sense of the expression "is not bound,"etc. is, that if they forcibly depart, the one that is left is not bound by the marriage tie to make provision for the one that departed; to do acts that might be prejudicial to religion by a violent effort to compel the departing husband or wife to live with the one that is forsaken; but is at liberty to live separate, and should regard it as proper so to do.

God hath called us to peace - Religion is peaceful. It would prevent contentions and broils. This is to be a grand principle. If it cannot be obtained by living together, there should be a peaceful separation; and "where"such a separation has taken place, the one which has departed should be suffered to remain separate in peace. God has called us to live in peace with all if we can. This is the general principle of religion on which we are always to act. In our relation to our partners in life, as well as in all other relations and circumstances, this is to guide us. Calvin supposes that this declaration pertains to the former part of this verse; and that Paul means to say, that if the unbelieving depart, he is to be suffered to do so peaceably rather than to have contention and strife, for God has called us to a life of peace.

Barnes: 1Co 7:16 - -- For what knowest thou ... - The apostle here assigns a reason why the believing party should not separate from the other needlessly, or why he ...

For what knowest thou ... - The apostle here assigns a reason why the believing party should not separate from the other needlessly, or why he should not desire to be separated. The reason is, the possibility, or the probability, that the unbelieving party might be converted by the example and entreaties of the other.

Whether then ... - How do you know "but"this may be done? Is there not a possibility, nay a probability of it, and is not this a sufficient reason for continuing together?

Save thy husband - Gain him over to the Christian faith; be the means of his conversion and salvation. compare Rom 11:26. We learn from this verse:

(1) That there is a possibility that an unbelieving partner in life may be converted by the example of the other.

(2) That this should be an object of intense interest to the Christian husband or wife, because:

\tx720 \tx1080 (a)    It will promote the happiness of the other;

(b)    It will promote their usefulness;

©    It will be the means of blessing their family, for parents should be united on the subject of religion, and in their example and influence in training up their sons and daughters; and,

(d)    Because the salvation of a beloved husband or wife should be an object of intense interest,

(3) This object is of so much importance that the Christian should be willing to submit to much, to bear much, and to bear long, in order that it may be accomplished. Paul said that it was desirable even to live with a pagan partner to do it; and so also it is desirable to bear much, very much, with even an unkind and fretful temper, with an unfaithful and even an intemperate husband, or with a perverse and peevish wife, if there is a prospect that they may be converted.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 his same direction is elsewhere given; 1Pe 3:1-2.

\caps1 (5) i\caps0 t is often done. It is not hopeless. Many a wife has thus been the means of saving a husband; many a husband has been the means of the salvation of the wife - In regard to the means by which this is to be hoped for, we may observe that it is not by a harsh, fretful, complaining temper; it is to be by kindness, and tenderness, and love. It is to be by an exemplification of the excellency of religion by example; by patience when provoked, meekness when injured, love when despised, forbearance when words of harshness and irritation are used, and by showing how a Christian can live, and what is the true nature of religion; by kind and affectionate conversation when alone, when the heart is tender, when calamities visit the family, and when the thoughts are drawn along by the events of Providence toward death. Not by harshness or severity of manner, is the result to be hoped for, but by tender entreaty, and mildness of life, and by prayer. Pre eminently this is to be used. When a husband will not hear, God can hear; when he is angry, morose, or unkind, God is gentle, tender, and kind; and when a husband or a wife turn away from the voice of gentle entreaty, God’ s ear is open, and God is ready to hear and to bless. Let one thing guide the life. We are never to cease to set a Christian example; never to cease to live as a Christian should live; never to cease to pray fervently to the God of grace, that the partner of our lives may be brought under the full influence of Christian truth, and meet us in the enjoyments of heaven.

Barnes: 1Co 7:17 - -- But as God hath distributed ... - As God hath divided ( ἐμέρισεν emerisen ); that is, given, imparted to anyone. As God has giv...

But as God hath distributed ... - As God hath divided ( ἐμέρισεν emerisen ); that is, given, imparted to anyone. As God has given grace to everyone. The words εἰ μὴ ei mē denote simply but in the beginning of this verse. The apostle here introduces a new subject; or an inquiry varying somewhat from that preceding, though of the same general nature. He had discussed the question whether a husband and wife ought to be separated on account of a difference in religion. He now says that the general principle there stated ought to rule everywhere; that people who become Christians ought not to seek to change their condition or calling in life, but to remain in that situation in which they were when they became Christians, and show the excellence of their religion in that particular calling. The object of Paul, therefore, is to preserve order, industry, faithfulness in the relations of life, and to show that Christianity does not design to break up the relations of social and domestic contact. This discussion continues to 1Co 7:24. The phrase "as God hath distributed"refers to the condition in which people are placed in life, whether as rich or poor, in a state of freedom or servitude, of learning or ignorance, etc. And it implies that God appoints the lot of people, and orders the circumstances of their condition; that religion is not designed to interfere directly with this; and that people should seek to show the real excellence of religion in the particular sphere in which they may have been placed by divine providence before they became converted.

As the Lord hath called everyone - That is, in the condition or circumstances in which anyone is when he is called by the Lord to be a Christian.

So let him walk - In that sphere of life; in that calling 1Co 7:20; in that particular relation in which he was, let him remain, unless he can consistently change it for the better, and there let him illustrate the true beauty and excellence of religion. This was designed to counteract the notion that the fact of embracing a new religion dissolved the relations of life which existed before. This idea probably prevailed extensively among the Jews. Paul’ s object is to show that the gospel, instead of dissolving those relations, only strengthened them, and enabled those who were converted the better to discharge the duties which grow out of them.

And so ordain I ... - This is no unique rule for you Corinthians. It is the universal rule which I everywhere inculcated. It is not improbable that there was occasion to insist everywhere on this rule, and to repress disorders which might have been attempted by some who might suppose that Christianity dissolved the former obligations of life.

Barnes: 1Co 7:18 - -- Is any man called? - Does anyone become a Christian? See the note at 1Co 1:26. Being circumcised - Being a native-born Jew, or having bec...

Is any man called? - Does anyone become a Christian? See the note at 1Co 1:26.

Being circumcised - Being a native-born Jew, or having become a Jewish proselyte, and having submitted to the initiatory rite of the Jewish religion.

Let him not become uncircumcised - This could not be literally done. But the apostle refers here to certain efforts which were made to remove the marks of circumcision which were often attempted by those who were ashamed of having been circumcised. The practice is often alluded to by Jewish writers, and is described by them; compare 1 Mac. 1Co 1:15. It is not decorous or proper here to show how this was done. The process is described in Cels. de Med. 7:25; see Grotuns and Bloomfield.

Is any called in uncircumcision? - A Gentile, or one who had not been circumcised.

Let him not be circumcised - The Jewish rites are not binding, and are not to be enjoined on those who have been converted from the Gentiles; see the notes at Rom 2:27-30.

Barnes: 1Co 7:19 - -- Circumcision is nothing ... - It is of no consequence in itself. It is not that which God requires now. And the mere external rite can be of no...

Circumcision is nothing ... - It is of no consequence in itself. It is not that which God requires now. And the mere external rite can be of no consequence one way or the other. The heart is all; and that is what God demands; see the notes at Rom 2:29.

But the keeping of the commandments of God - Is something, is the main thing, is everything; and this can be done whether a man is circumcised or not.

Barnes: 1Co 7:20 - -- Let every man abide - Let him remain or continue. In the same calling - The same occupation, profession, rank of life. We use the word "c...

Let every man abide - Let him remain or continue.

In the same calling - The same occupation, profession, rank of life. We use the word "calling"in the same sense to denote the occupation or profession of a man. Probably the original idea which led people to designate a profession as a CallinG was the belief that God called every man to the profession and rank which he occupies; that is, that it is by his "arrangement, or providence,"that he occupies that rank rather than another. In this way every man has a Call to the profession in which he is engaged as really as ministers of the gospel; and every man should have as clear evidence that "God has called"him to the sphere of life in which he moves as ministers of the gospel should have that God has called them to their appropriate profession. This declaration of Paul, that everyone is to remain in the same occupation or rank in which he was when he was converted, is to he taken in a general and not in an unqualified sense. It does not design to teach that a man is in no situation to seek a change in his profession when he becomes pious. But it is intended to show that religion was the friend of order; that it did not disregard or disarrange the relations of social life; that it was suited to produce contentment even in an humble walk, and to prevent repinings at the lot of those who were more favored or happy. That it did not design to prevent all change is apparent from the next verse, and from the nature of the case. some of the circumstances in which a change of condition, or of calling, may be proper when a man is converted, are the following:

(1) When a man is a slave, and he can obtain his freedom, 1Co 7:21.

\caps1 (2) w\caps0 hen a man is pursuing a wicked calling or course of life when he was converted, even if it is lucrative, he should abandon it as speedily as possible. Thus, if a man is engaged, as John Newton was, in the slave-trade, he should at once abandon it. If he is engaged in the manufacture or sale of ardent spirits, he should at once forsake the business, even at great personal sacrifice, and engage in a lawful and honorable employment; see the note at Act 19:19. No considerations can justify a continuance in a course of life like this after a man is converted. No consideration can make a business which is "evil, and only evil, and that continually,"proper or right.

\caps1 (3) w\caps0 here a man can increase his usefulness by choosing a new profession. Thus, the usefulness of many a man is greatly promoted by his leaving an agricultural, or mechanical employment; or by his leaving the bar, or the mercantile profession, and becoming a minister of the gospel. In such situations, religion not only permits a man to change his profession, but it demands it; nor will God smile upon him, or bless him, unless the change is made. An opportunity to become more useful imposes an obligation to change the course of life. And no man is permitted to waste his life and talents in a mere scheme of money-making, or in self-indulgence, when by changing his calling he can do more for the salvation of the world.

Barnes: 1Co 7:21 - -- Being a servant - ( δοῦλος doulos ). A slave. Slaves abounded in Greece and in every part of the pagan world. Athens, e. g., had, i...

Being a servant - ( δοῦλος doulos ). A slave. Slaves abounded in Greece and in every part of the pagan world. Athens, e. g., had, in her best days, 20,000 freemen, and 400,000 slaves. See the condition of the pagan world on this subject illustrated at length, and in a very learned manner, by B. B. Edwards, in the Bib. Repository for October, 1835, pp. 411-436. It was a very important subject to inquire what ought to be done in such instances. Many slaves who had been converted might argue that the institution of slavery was contrary to the rights of man; that it destroyed their equality with other people; that it was cruel, and oppressive, and unjust in the highest degree; and that therefore they ought not to submit to it, but that they should burst their bonds, and assert their rights as freemen. In order to prevent restlessness, uneasiness, and insubordination; in order to preserve the peace of society, and to prevent religion from being regarded as disorganizing and disorderly, Paul here states the principle on which the slave was to act. And by referring to this case, which was the strongest which could occur, he designed doubtless to inculcate the duty of order, and contentment in general in all the other relations in which people might be when they were converted.

care not for it - Let it not be a subject of deep anxiety and distress; do not deem it to be disgraceful; let it not affect your spirits; but be content in the lot of life where God has placed you. If you can in a proper way obtain your freedom, do it; if not let it not be a subject of painful reflection. In the sphere of life where God by his providence has placed you, strive to evince the Christian spirit, and show that you are able to bear the sorrows and endure the toils of your humble lot with submission to the will of God, and so as to advance in that relation the interest of the true religion. in that calling do your duty, and evince always the spirit of a Christian. This duty is often enjoined on those who were servants, or slaves; Eph 6:5; Col 3:22; 1Ti 6:1; Tit 2:9; 1Pe 2:18. This duty of the slave, however, does not make the oppression of the master right or just, any more than the duty of one who is persecuted or reviled to be patient and meek makes the conduct of the persecutor or reviler just or right; nor does it prove that the master has a right to hold the slave as property, which can never be right in the sight of God; but it requires simply that the slave should evince, even in the midst of degradation and injury, the spirit of a Christian, just as it is required of a man who is injured in any way, to bear it as becomes a follower of the Lord Jesus. Nor does this passage prove that a slave ought not to desire freedom if it can be obtained, for this is supposed in the subsequent clause. Every human being has a right to desire to be free and to seek liberty. But it should be done in accordance with the rules of the gospel; so as not to dishonor the religion of Christ, and so as not to injure the true happiness of others, or overturn the foundations of society.

But if thou mayest be free - If thou canst ( δύνασαι dunasai ), if it is in your power to become free. That is, if your master or the laws set you free; or if you can purchase your freedom; or if the laws can be changed in a regular manner. If freedom can be obtained in "any"manner that is not sinful. In many cases a Christian master might set his slaves free; in others, perhaps, the laws might do it; in some, perhaps, the freedom of the slave might be purchased by a Christian friend. In all these instances it would be proper to embrace the opportunity of becoming free. The apostle does not speak of insurrection, and the whole scope of the passage is against an attempt on their part to obtain freedom by force and violence. He manifestly teaches them to remain in their condition, to bear it patiently and submissively, and in that relation to bear their hard lot with a Christian spirit, unless their freedom could be obtained without "violence and bloodshed."And the same duty is still binding. Evil as slavery is, and always evil, and only evil, yet the Christian religion requires patience, gentleness, forbearance; not violence, war, insurrection, and bloodshed. Christianity would teach masters to be kind, tender, and gentle; to liberate their slaves, and to change the laws so that it may be done; to be "just"toward those whom they have held in bondage. It would not teach the slave to rise on his master, and imbrue his hands in his blood; to break up the relations of society by violence; or to dishonor his religion by the indulgence of the feelings of revenge and by murder.

Use it rather - Avail yourselves of the privilege if you can, and be a freeman. There are disadvantages attending the condition era slave, and if you can escape from them in a proper manner, it is your privilege and your duty to do it.

Barnes: 1Co 7:22 - -- For he that is called in the Lord - He that is called by the Lord; he that becomes a Christian. Being a servant - A slave when he is conv...

For he that is called in the Lord - He that is called by the Lord; he that becomes a Christian.

Being a servant - A slave when he is converted.

Is the Lord’ s freeman - Margin, "Made free"( ἀπελεύθερος apeleutheros ). Is manumitted, made free, endowed with liberty by the Lord. This is designed evidently to comfort the heart of the slave, and to make him contented with his condition; and it is a most delicate, happy, and tender argument. The sense is this. "You are blessed with freedom from the bondage of sin by the Lord. You were formerly a slave to sin, but now you are liberated. that bondage was far more grievous, and far more to be lamented than the bondage of the body. But from that long, grievous, and oppressive servitude you are now free. Your condition, even though you are a slave, is far better than it was before; nay, you are now the true freeman, the freeman of the Lord. Your spirit is free; while those who are not slaves, and perhaps your own masters, are even now under a more severe and odious bondage than yours. You should rejoice, therefore, in deliverance from the greater evil, and be glad that in the eye of God you are regarded as his freeman, and endowed by him with more valuable freedom than it would be to be delivered from the bondage under which you are now placed. Freedom from sin is the highest blessing that can be conferred upon people; and if that is yours, you should little regard your external circumstances in this life. You will soon be admitted to the eternal liberty of the saints in glory, and will forget all your toils and privations in this world."

Is Christ’ s servant - Is the "slave"( δοῦλος doulos ) of Christ; is bound to obey law, and to submit himself, as you are, to the authority of another. This too is designed to promote contentment with his lot, by the consideration that all are bound to obey law; that there is no such thing as absolute independence; and that, since law is to be obeyed, it is not degradation and ignominy to submit to those which God has imposed on us by His providence in an humble sphere of life. Whether a freeman or a slave, we are bound to yield obedience to law, and everywhere must obey the laws of God. It is not, therefore, degradation to submit to his laws in a state of servitude, though these laws come to us through an earthly master. In this respect, the slave and the freeman are on a level, as both are required to submit to the laws of Christ; and, even if freedom could be obtained, there is no such thing as absolute independence. This is a very beautiful, delicate and happy argument, and perhaps no consideration could be urged that would be more adapted to produce contentment.

Barnes: 1Co 7:23 - -- Ye are bought with a price - Though you are slaves to people, yet you have been purchased for God by the blood of His Son; see the note at 1Co ...

Ye are bought with a price - Though you are slaves to people, yet you have been purchased for God by the blood of His Son; see the note at 1Co 6:20. You are, therefore, in his sight of inestimable worth, and are bound to be His.

Be not ye the servants of men - That is, "Do not regard yourselves as the slaves of men. Even in your humble relation of life, even as servants under the laws of the land, regard yourselves as the servants of God, as obeying and serving him "even in this relation,"since all those who are bought with a price - all Christians, whether bond or free - are in fact the servant (slaves, δοῦλοι douloi ) of God, 1Co 7:22. in this relation, therefore, esteem yourselves as the servants of God, as bound by his laws, as subject to him, and as really serving him, while you yield all proper obedience to your master."Rosenmuller, Grotius, and some others, however, think that this refers to Christians in general; and that the apostle means to caution them against subjecting themselves to needless rites and customs which the false teachers would impose on them. Others have supposed (as Doddridge) that it means that they should not sell themselves into slavery; but assuredly a caution of this kind was not needful. The view given above I regard as the interpretation demanded by the connection. And in this view it would promote contentment, and would even prevent their taking any improper measures to disturb the relations of social life, by the high and solemn consideration that even in that relation they were in common with all Christians, the true and real servants of God. They belonged to God, and they should serve Him. In all things which their masters commanded, that were in accordance with the will of God, and that could be done with a quiet conscience, they were to regard themselves as serving God; if at any time they were commanded to do that which God had forbidden, they were to remember that they were the servants of God, and that he was to be obeyed rather than man.

Barnes: 1Co 7:24 - -- Brethren ... - ; see the note at 1Co 7:20.

Brethren ... - ; see the note at 1Co 7:20.

Barnes: 1Co 7:25 - -- Not concerning virgins - This commences the "third"subject on which the opinion of Paul seems to have been asked by the church at Corinth - whe...

Not concerning virgins - This commences the "third"subject on which the opinion of Paul seems to have been asked by the church at Corinth - whether it was proper that those who had unmarried daughters, or wards, should give them in marriage. The reason why this question was proposed may have been, that many in the church at Corinth were the advocates of celibacy, and this, perhaps, on two grounds:

(1) Some may have supposed that in the existing state of things - the persecutions and trials to which Christians were exposed - it would be advisable that a man who had unmarried daughters, or wards, should keep them from the additional cares and trials to which they would be exposed with a family; and,

(2) Some may have already been the advocates for celibacy, and have maintained that that state was more favorable to piety, and was altogether to be preferred. It is known that that opinion had an early prevalence, and gave rise to the establishment of "nunneries"in the papal church; an opinion that has everywhere been attended with licentiousness and corruption. It is not improbable that there may have been advocates for this opinion even in the church of Corinth; and it was well, therefore, that the authority of an apostle should be employed to sanction and to honor the marriage union.

I have no commandment ... - No positive, express revelation; see the notes on 1Co 7:6, 1Co 7:10.

Yet I give my judgment - I give my opinion, or advice; see the note at 1Co 7:6.

As one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord - As a Christian; one who has been pardoned, whose mind has been enlightened, and who has been endued with the grace of God.

To be faithful - Faithful to my God. As one who would not give advice for any selfish, or mercenary, or worldly consideration; as one known to act from a desire to honor God, and to seek the best interests of the church, even though there is no explicit command. The advice of "such"a man - a devoted, faithful, self-denying, experienced Christian - is entitled to respectful deference, even where there is no claim to inspiration. Religion qualifies to give advice; and the advice of a man who has no selfish ends to gratify, and who is known to seek supremely the glory of God, should not be disregarded or slighted. Paul had a special claim to give this advice, because he was the founder of the congregation at Corinth.

Barnes: 1Co 7:26 - -- I suppose - I think; I give the following advice. For the present distress - In the present state of trial. The word "distress"( ἀνα...

I suppose - I think; I give the following advice.

For the present distress - In the present state of trial. The word "distress"( ἀνάγκην anagkēn , necessity) denotes calamity, persecution, trial, etc.; see Luk 21:23. The word rendered "present"( ἐνεστῶσαν enestōsan ) denotes that which "urges on,"or that which at that time presses on, or afflicts. Here it is implied:

(1)    That at that time they were subject to trials so severe as to render the advice which he was about to give proper; and,

(2)    That he by no means meant that this should be a "permanent arrangement"in the church, and of course it cannot be urged as an argument for the monastic system.

What the "urgent distress"of this time was, is not certainly known. If the Epistle was written about 59 a.d. (see the introduction), it was in the time of Nero; and probably he had already begun to oppress and persecute Christians. At all events, it is evident that the Christians at Corinth were subject to some trials which rendered the cares of the marriage life undesirable.

It is good for a man so to be - The emphasis here is on the word "so" οὕτως houtōs ; that is, it is best for a man to conduct "in the following manner;"the word so referring to the advice which follows. "I advise that he conduct in the following manner, to wit."Most commentators suppose that it means "as he is:"that is, unmarried; but the interpretation proposed above best suits the connection. The advice given is in the following verses.

Barnes: 1Co 7:27 - -- Art thou bound unto a wife? - Art thou already married? Marriage is often thus represented as a "tie,"a "bond,"etc.; see the note at Rom 7:2. ...

Art thou bound unto a wife? - Art thou already married? Marriage is often thus represented as a "tie,"a "bond,"etc.; see the note at Rom 7:2.

Seek not to be loosed - Seek not a "dissolution"( λύσιν lusin ) of the connection, either by divorce or by a separation from each other; see the notes on 1Co 7:10-17.

Art thou loosed from a wife? - Art thou unmarried? It should have been rendered "free from"a wife; or art thou single? It does not imply of necessity that the person had been married, though it may have that meaning, and signify those who had been separated from a wife by her death. There is no necessity of supposing that Paul refers to persons who had divorced their wives. So Grotius, Schleusner, Doddridge, etc.

Barnes: 1Co 7:28 - -- Thou hast not sinned - There is no express command of God on this subject. The counsel which I give is mere advice, and it may be observed or n...

Thou hast not sinned - There is no express command of God on this subject. The counsel which I give is mere advice, and it may be observed or not as you shall judge best. Marriage is honorable and lawful; and though there may be circumstances where it is advisable not to enter into this relation, yet there is no law which prohibits it. The same advice would be proper now, if it were a time of persecution; or if a man is poor, and cannot support a family; or if he has already a dependent mother and sisters to be supported by him, it would be well to follow the advice of Paul. So also when the cares of a family would take up a man’ s time and efforts; when but for this he might give himself to a missionary life, the voice of wisdom may be in accordance with that of Paul; that a man may be free from these cares, and may give himself with more undivided interest and more successful toil to the salvation of man.

Such shall have trouble in the flesh - They shall have anxiety, care; solicitude, trials. Days of persecution are coming on, and you may be led to the stake, and in those fiery trials your families may be torn asunder, and a part be put to death. Or you may be poor, and oppressed, and driven from your homes, and made wanderers and exiles, for the sake of your religion.

But I spare you - I will not dwell on the melancholy theme. I will not pain your hearts by describing the woes that shall ensue. I will not do anything to deter you from acting as you deem right. If you choose to marry, it is lawful; and I will not imbitter your joys and harrow up your feelings by the description of your future difficulties and trials. The word "flesh"here denotes outward circumstances in contradistinction from the mind. They might have peace of mind, for religion would furnish that; but they would be exposed to poverty, persecution, and calamity.

Barnes: 1Co 7:29 - -- But this I say - Whether you are married or not, or in whatever condition of life you may be, I would remind you that life hastens to a close, ...

But this I say - Whether you are married or not, or in whatever condition of life you may be, I would remind you that life hastens to a close, and that its grand business is to be prepared to die. It matters little in what condition or rank of life we are, if we are ready to depart to another and a better world.

The time is short - The time is "contracted,""drawn into a narrow space"( συνεσταλμένος sunestalmenos ). The word which is used here is commonly applied to the act of "furling"a sail, that is, reducing it into a narrow compass; and is then applied to anything that is reduced within narrow limits. Perhaps there was a reference here to the fact that the time was "contracted,"or made short, by their impending persecutions and trials. But it is always equally true that time is short. It will soon glide away, and come to a close. The idea of the apostle here is, that the plans of life should all be formed in view of this truth, that time is short. No plan should be adopted which does not contemplate this; no engagement of life made when it will not be appropriate to think of it; no connection entered into when the thought "time is short,"would be an unwelcome intruder; see 1Pe 4:7; 2Pe 3:8-9.

It remaineth - ( τὸ λοιπόν to loipon ). The remainder is; or this is a consequence from this consideration of the shortness of time.

Both they that have wives ... - This does not mean that they are to treat them with unkindness or neglect, or fail in the duties of love and fidelity. It is to be taken in a general sense, that they were to live above the world; that they were not to be unduly attached to them that they were to be ready to part with them; and that they should not suffer attachment to them to interfere with any duty which they owed to God. They were in a world of trial; and they were exposed to persecution; and as Christians they were bound to live entirely to God, and they ought not, therefore, to allow attachment to earthly friends to alienate their affections from God, or to interfere with their Christian duty. In one word, they ought to be "just as faithful to God,"and "just as pious,"in every respect, as if they had no wife and no earthly friend. Such a consecration to God is difficult, but not impossible. Our earthly attachments and cares draw away our affections from God, but they need not do it. Instead of being the occasion of alienating our affections from God, they should be, and they might be, the means of binding us more firmly and entirely to him and to his cause. But alas, how many professing Christians live for their wives and children only, and not for God in these relations! how many suffer these earthly objects of attachment to alienate their minds from the ways and commandments of God, rather than make them the occasion of uniting them more tenderly to him and his cause!

Barnes: 1Co 7:30 - -- And they that weep - They who are afflicted. As though they wept not - Restraining and moderating their grief by the hope of the life to ...

And they that weep - They who are afflicted.

As though they wept not - Restraining and moderating their grief by the hope of the life to come. "The general idea in all these expressions is, that in whatever situation Christians are, they should be dead to the world, and not improperly affected by passing events."It is impossible for human nature not to feel when persecuted, maligned, slandered, or when near earthly friends are taken away. But religion will calm the troubled spirit; pour oil on the agitated waves; light up a smile in the midst of tears; cause the beams of a calm and lovely morning to rise on the anxious heart; silence the commotions of the agitated soul, and produce joy even in the midst of sorrow. Religion will keep us from immoderate grief, and sustain the soul even when in distress nature forces us to shed the tear of mourning. Christ sweat great drops of blood, and Christians often weep; but the heart may be calm, peaceful, elevated, confident in God in the darkest night and the severest tempest of calamity.

And they that rejoice - They that are happy; they that are prospered; that have beloved families around them; that are blessed with success, with honor, with esteem, with health. They that have occasion of rejoicing and gratitude.

As though they rejoiced not - Not rejoicing with excessive or immoderate joy. Not with riot or unholy mirth. Not satisfied with these things; though they may rejoice in them. Not forgetting that they must soon be left; but keeping the mind in a calm, serious, settled, thoughtful state, in view of the fact that all these things must soon come to an end. O how would this thought silence the voice of unseemly mirth; How would it produce calmness, serenity, heavenly joy, where is now often unhallowed riot; and true peace, where now there is only forced and boisterous revelry!

As though they possessed not - It is right to buy and to obtain property. But it should be held with the conviction that it; is by an uncertain tenure, and must soon be left. People may give a deed that shall secure from their fellow man; but no man can give a title that shall not be taken away by death. Our lands and houses, our stocks and bonds and mortgages, our goods and chattels, shall soon pass into other hands. Other people will plow our fields, reap our harvests, work in our shops, stand at our counters, sit down at our firesides, eat on our tables, lie upon our beds. Others will occupy our places in society, have our offices, sit in our seats in the sanctuary. Others will take possession of our gold, and appropriate it to their own use; and we shall have no more interest in it, and no more control over it, than our neighbor has now, and no power to eject the man that has taken possession of our houses and our lands. Secure therefore as our titles are safe as are our investments, yet how soon shall we lose all interest in them by death; and how ought this consideration to induce us to live above the world, and to secure a treasure in that world where no thief approaches, and no moth corrupts.

Barnes: 1Co 7:31 - -- And they that use this world - That make a necessary and proper use of it to furnish raiment, food, clothing, medicine, protection, etc. It is ...

And they that use this world - That make a necessary and proper use of it to furnish raiment, food, clothing, medicine, protection, etc. It is right so to use the world, for it was made for these purposes. The word using here refers to the lawful use of it ( χρώμενοι chrōmenoi ).

As not abusing it - καταχρώμενοι katachrōmenoi . The preposition κατα kata , in composition here has the sense of "too much, too freely,"and is taken not merely in an intensive sense, but to denote evil, the abuse of the world. It means that we are not to use it to EXCesS; we are not to make it a mere matter of indulgences, or to make that the main object and purpose of our living. We are not to give our appetites to indulgence; our bodies to riot; our days and nights to feasting and revelry.

For the fashion of this world - ( τὸ σχῆμα to schēma .) The form, the appearance. In 1Jo 2:17, it is said that "the world passeth away and the lust thereof."The worst "fashion"here is probably taken from the shifting scenes of the drama where, when the scene changes, the imposing and splendid pageantry passes off. The form, the fashion of the world is like a splendid, gilded pageant. It is unreal and illusive. It continues but a little time; and soon the scene changes, and the fashion that allured and enticed us now passes away, and we pass to other scenes.

Passeth away - ( παράγει paragei ). Passes off like the splendid, gaudy, shifting scenes of the stage. What a striking description of the changing, unstable, and unreal pageantry of this world! Now it is frivilous, splendid, gorgeous, lovely; tomorrow it is gone, and is succeeded by new actors and new scenes. Now all is busy with one set of actors; tomorrow a new company appears, and again they are succeeded by another, and all are engaged in scenes that are equally changing, vain, gorgeous, and delusive. A simliar idea is presented in the well known and beautiful description of the great British dramatist:

"All the world’ s a stage,

And all the men and women merely players.

They have their exits and their entrances,

And one man in his time plays many parts."

If such be the character of the scenes in which we are engaged, how little should we fix our affections on them, and how anxious should we be to be prepared for the "real and unchanging"scenes of another world!

Barnes: 1Co 7:32 - -- But I would have you - I would advise you to such a course of life as should leave you without carefulness My advice is regulated by that wish,...

But I would have you - I would advise you to such a course of life as should leave you without carefulness My advice is regulated by that wish, and that wish guides me in giving it.

Without carefulness - ( ἀμερίμνους amerimnous ). Without anxiety, solicitude, care; without such a necessary attention to the things of this life as to take off your thoughts and affections from heavenly objects; see the notes on Mat 6:25-31.

careth for the things that belong to the Lord - Margin, "The things of the Lord;"the things of religion. His attention is not distracted by the cares of this life; his time is not engrossed, and his affections alienated by an attendance on the concerns of a family, and especially by solicitude for them in times of trial and persecution. He can give his main attention to the things of religion. He is at leisure to give his chief thoughts and anxieties to the advancement of the Redeemer’ s kingdom. Paul’ s own example showed that this was the course which he preferred; and showed also that in some instances it was lawful and proper for a man to remain unmarried, and to give himself entirely to the work of the Lord. But the divine commandment Gen 1:28, and the commendation everywhere bestowed upon marriage in the Scriptures, as well as the nature of the case, show that it was not designed that celibacy should be general.

Barnes: 1Co 7:33 - -- careth for the things of the world - Is under a necessity of giving attention to the things of the world; or cannot give his undivided attentio...

careth for the things of the world - Is under a necessity of giving attention to the things of the world; or cannot give his undivided attention and interest to the things of religion. This would be especially true in times of persecution.

How he may please his wife - How he may gratify her; how he may accommodate himself to her temper and wishes, to make her happy. The apostle here plainly intimates that there would be danger that the man would be so anxious to gratify his wife, as to interfere with his direct religious duties. This may be done in many ways:

(1)    The affections may be taken off from the Lord, and bestowed upon the wife. she may become the object of even improper attachment, and may take the place of God in the affections.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 he time may be taken up in devotion to her, which should be given to secret prayer, and to the duties of religion.

(3)\caps1     s\caps0 he may demand his "society and attention"when he ought to be engaged in doing good to others, and endeavoring to advance the kingdom of Christ.

(4)\caps1     s\caps0 he may be frivilous and fashionable, and may lead him into improper expenses, into a style of living that may be unsuitable for a Christian, and into society where his piety will be injured, and his devotion to God lessened; or,

(5)    She may have erroneous opinions on the doctrines and duties of religion; and a desire to please her may lead him insensibly to modify his views, and to adopt more lax opinions, and to pursue a more lax course of life in his religious duties.

Many a husband has thus been injured by a frivilous, thoughtless, and imprudent wife; and though that wife may be a Christian, yet her course may be such as shall greatly retard his growth in grace, and mar the beauty of his piety.

Barnes: 1Co 7:34 - -- Between a wife and a virgin, - Between a woman that is married and one that is unmarried. The apostle says that a similar difference between th...

Between a wife and a virgin, - Between a woman that is married and one that is unmarried. The apostle says that a similar difference between the condition of her that is married and her that is unmarried takes place, which had been observed between the married and the unmarried man. The Greek word here ( μεμέρισται memeristai ) may mean, "is divided,"and be rendered, "the wife and the virgin are divided in the same manner;"that is, there is the same difference in their case as exists between the married and the unmarried man.

The unmarried women ... - Has more advantages for attending to the things of religion; has fewer temptations to neglect her proper duty to God.

Both in body and in spirit - Entirely holy; that she may be entirely devoted to God. Perhaps in her case the apostle mentions the "body,"which he had not done in the case of the man, because her temptation would be principally in regard to that - the danger of endeavoring to decorate and adorn her person to please her husband,

How she may please her husband - The apostle here intends, undoubtedly, to intimate that there were dangers to personal piety in the married life, which would not occur in a state of celibacy; and that the unmarried female would have greater opportunities for devotion and usefulness than if married. And he intimates that the married female would be in danger of losing her zeal and marring her piety, by attention to her husband, and by a constant effort to please him. Some of the ways in which this might be done are the following:

(1) As in the former case 1Co 7:33, her affections might be transferred from God to the partner of her life.

\caps1 (2) h\caps0 er time will be occupied by an attention to him and to his will; and there would be danger that that attention would be allowed to interfere with her hours of secret retirement and communion with God.

\caps1 (3) h\caps0 er time will be necessarily broken in upon by the cares of a family, and she should therefore guard with special vigilance, that she may redeem time for secret communion with God.

\caps1 (4) t\caps0 he time which she before gave to benevolent objects, may now be given to please her husband. Before her marriage she may have been distinguished for zeal, and for active efforts in every plan of doing good; subsequently, she may lay aside this zeal, and withdraw from these plans, and be as little distinguished as others.

\caps1 (5) h\caps0 er piety may be greatly injured by false notions of what should be done to please her husband. If he is a worldly and fashionable man, she may seek to please him by "gold, and pearls, and costly array."Instead of cultivating the ornament of "a meek and quiet spirit,"her main wish may be to decorate her person, and render herself attractive by the adorning of her person rather than of her MinD.

\caps1 (6) i\caps0 f he is opposed to religion, or if he has lax opinions on the subject, or if he is sceptical and worldly, she will be in danger of relaxing in her views in regard to the strictness of Christianity, and of becoming conformed to his. She will insensibly become less strict in regard to Sunday, the Bible, the prayer meeting, the Sunday School, the plans of Christian benevolence, the doctrines of the gospel.

\caps1 (7) t\caps0 o please him, she will be found in the frivilous circle, perhaps in the assembly room, or even the theater, or amidst companies of gaiety and amusement, and will forget that she is professedly devoted only to God. And,

(8) She is in danger, as the result of all this, of forsaking her old religious friends, the companions of purer, brighter days, the humble and devoted friends of Jesus; and of seeking society among the frivilous, the rich, the proud, the worldly. Her piety thus is injured; she becomes worldly and vain, and less and less like Christ; until heaven, perhaps, in mercy smites her idol, and he dies and leaves her again to the blessedness of single-hearted devotion to God. O! how many a Christian female has thus been injured by an unhappy marriage with a frivilous and worldly man! How often has the church occasion to mourn over piety that is dimmed, benevolence that is quenched, zeal that is extinguished by devotion to a frivilous and worldly husband! How often does humble piety weep over such a scene! How often does the cause of sacred charity sigh! How often is the Redeemer wounded in the house of his friends! And O how often does it become necessary for God to interpose, and to remove by death the object of the affection of his wandering child, and to clothe her in the habiliments of mourning, and to bathe her cheeks in tears, that "by the sadness of the countenance her heart may be made better."Who can tell how many a widow is made such from this cause; who can tell how much religion is injured by thus stealing away the affections from God?

Barnes: 1Co 7:35 - -- For your own profit - That you may avail yourselves of all your advantages and privileges, and pursue such a course as shall tend most to advan...

For your own profit - That you may avail yourselves of all your advantages and privileges, and pursue such a course as shall tend most to advance your personal piety and salvation.

Not that I may cast a snare upon you - The word rendered "snare"( βρόχον brochon ) means a cord, a rope, a bond; and the sense is, that Paul would not BinD them by any rule which God had not made; or that he would not restrain them from that which is lawful, and which the welfare of society usually requires. Paul means, that his object in his advice was their welfare; it was not by any means to bind, fetter, or restrain them from any course which would be for their real happiness, but to promote their real and permanent advantage. The idea which is here presented by the word "snare,"is usually conveyed by the use of the word "yoke"Mat 11:29; Act 15:10; Gal 5:1, and sometimes by the word "burden;"Mat 23:4; Act 15:28.

But for that which is comely - ( εὔσχημον euschēmon ). Decorous, fit, proper, noble. For that which is best Fitted to your present condition, and which, on the whole, will be best, and most for your own advantage. There would be a fitness and propriety in their pursuing the course which he recommended.

That ye may attend on the Lord - That you may engage in religious duties and serve God.

Without distraction - Without being drawn away ἀπερισπάστως aperispastōs ; without care, interruption, and anxiety. That you may be free to engage with undivided interest in the service of the Lord.

Barnes: 1Co 7:36 - -- That he behaveth himself uncomely - Acts an unbecoming part, imposes an unnecessary, painful, and improper constraint, crosses her inclinations...

That he behaveth himself uncomely - Acts an unbecoming part, imposes an unnecessary, painful, and improper constraint, crosses her inclinations which are in them selves proper.

Toward his virgin - His daughter, or his ward, or any unmarried female committed to his care.

If she pass the flower of her age - If she pass the marriageable age and remains unmarried. It is well known that in the east it was regarded as especially dishonorable to remain unmarried; and the authority of a father, therefore, might be the means of involving his daughter in shame and disgrace. When this would be the case, it would be wrong to prohibit her marriage.

And need so require - And she ought to be allowed to marry. If it will promote her happiness, and if she would be unhappy, and regarded as dishonored, if she remained in a state of celibacy.

Let him do what he will - He has the authority in the case, for in the east the authority resided with the father. He may either give her in marriage or not, as he pleases. But in this case it is advisable that she should marry.

He sinneth not - He errs not; he will do nothing positively wrong in the case. Marriage is lawful, and in this case it is advisable, and he may consent to it, for the reasons above stated, without error or impropriety.

Barnes: 1Co 7:37 - -- Nevertheless - But. The apostle in this verse states some instances where it would not be proper to give a daughter in marriage; and the verse ...

Nevertheless - But. The apostle in this verse states some instances where it would not be proper to give a daughter in marriage; and the verse is a kind of summing up of all that be had said on the subject.

That standeth steadfast in his heart ... - Most commentators have understood this of the father of the virgin, and suppose that it refers to his purpose of keeping her from the marriage connection. The phrase to stand steadfast, is opposed to a disposition that is vacillating, unsettled, etc., and denotes a man who has command of himself, who adheres to his purpose, a man who has "hitherto"adhered to his purpose, and to whose happiness and reputation it is important that he should be known as one who is not vacillating, or easily moved.

Having no necessity - Where there is nothing in her disposition or inclination that would make marriage necessary, or when there is no "engagement or obligation"that would be violated if she did not marry.

But hath power over his own will - Hath power to do as he pleases; is not bound in the case by another. When there is no "engagement, or contract,"made in childhood, or promise made in early life that would bind him. Often daughters were espoused, or promised when they were very young, and in such a case a man would be bound to adhere to his engagement; and much as he might desire the reverse, and her celibacy, yet he would not have power over his own will, or be at liberty to withhold her.

And hath so decreed in his heart - Has so judgeD, determined, resolved.

That he will keep his virgin - His daughter, or ward, in an unmarried state. He has "power and authority"to do it, and if he does it he will not sin.

Doeth well - In either of these cases, he does well. If he has a daughter, and chooses to retain her in an unmarried state, he does well or right.

Barnes: 1Co 7:38 - -- Doeth well - Does right; violates no law in it, and is not to be blamed for it. Doeth better - Does that which is on the whole to be pref...

Doeth well - Does right; violates no law in it, and is not to be blamed for it.

Doeth better - Does that which is on the whole to be preferred, if it can be done. He more certainly, in the present circumstances, consults her happiness by withholding her from the marriage connection than he could by allowing her to enter it.

Barnes: 1Co 7:39 - -- The wife is bound ... - ; see the notes at Rom 7:2. Only in the Lord - That is, only to one who is a Christian; with a proper sense of he...

The wife is bound ... - ; see the notes at Rom 7:2.

Only in the Lord - That is, only to one who is a Christian; with a proper sense of her obligations to Christ, and so as to promote his glory. The apostle supposed that could not be done if she were allowed to marry a pagan, or one of a different religion. The same sentiment he advances in 2Co 6:14, and it was his intention, undoubtedly, to affirm that it was proper for a widow to marry no one who was not a Christian. The reasons at that time would be obvious:

(1) They could have no sympathy and fellow-feeling on the most important of all subjects, if the one was a Christian and the other a pagan; see 2Co 6:14-15, etc.

\caps1 (2) i\caps0 f she should marry a pagan, would it not be showing that she had not as deep a conviction of the importance and truth of her religion as she ought to have? If Christians were required to be "separate,"to be "a special people,"not "to be conformed to the world,"how could these precepts be obeyed if the society of a pagan was voluntarily chosen, and if she became united to him for life?

\caps1 (3) s\caps0 he would in this way greatly hinder her usefulness; put herself in the control of one who had no respect for her religion, and who would demand her time and attention, and thus interfere with her attendance on the public and private duties of religion, and the offices of Christian charity.

\caps1 (4) s\caps0 he would thus greatly endanger her piety. There would be danger from the opposition, the taunts, the sneers of the enemy of Christ; from the secret influence of living with a man who had no respect for God; from his introducing her into society that was irreligious, and that would tend to mar the beauty of her piety, and to draw her away from simple-hearted devotion to Jesus Christ. And do not these reasons apply to similar cases now? And if so, is not the law still binding? Do not such unions now, as really as they did then, place the Christian where there is no mutual sympathy on the subject dearest to the Christian heart? Do they not show that she who forms such a union has not as deep a sense of the importance of piety, and of the pure and holy nature of her religion as she ought to have? Do they not take time from God and from charity; break up plans of usefulness, and lead away from the society of Christians, and from the duties of religion? Do they not expose often to ridicule, to reproach, to persecution, to contempt, and to pain? Do they not often lead into society, by a desire to please the partner in life, where there is no religion, where God is excluded, where the name of Christ is never heard, and where the piety is marred, and the beauty of simple Christian piety is dimmed? and if so, are not such marriages contrary to the law of Christ? I confess, that this verse, to my view, proves that all such marriages are a violation of the New Testament; and if they are, they should not on any plea be entered into; and it will be found, in perhaps nearly all instances, that they are disastrous to the piety of the married Christian, and the occasion of ultimate regret, and the cause of a loss of comfort, peace, and usefulness in the married life.

Barnes: 1Co 7:40 - -- If she so abide - If she remain a widow even if she could be married to a Christian. After my judgment - In my opinion; 1Co 7:25. An...

If she so abide - If she remain a widow even if she could be married to a Christian.

After my judgment - In my opinion; 1Co 7:25.

And I think also that I have the Spirit of God - Macknight and others suppose that this phrase implies entire certainty; and that Paul means to affirm that in this he was clear that he was under the influence of inspiration. He appeals for the use of the term ( δωκῶ dōkō ) to Mar 10:32; Luk 8:18; 1Co 4:9; 1Co 8:2; 1Co 11:16; Heb 4:1, etc. But the word does not usually express absolute certainty. It implies a doubt; though there may be a strong persuasion or conviction; or the best judgment which the mind can form in the case; see Mat 6:7; Mat 26:53; Mar 6:49; Luk 8:18; Luk 10:36; Luk 12:51; Luk 13:24; Luk 22:24; Act 17:18; Act 25:27; 1Co 16:12, 1Co 16:22, etc. It implies here a belief that Paul was under the influence of the infallible Spirit, and that his advice was such as accorded with the will of God. Perhaps he alludes to the fact that the teachers at Corinth deemed themselves to be under the influence of inspiration, and Paul said that he judged also of himself that he was divinely guided and directed in what he said - "Calvin."And as Paul in this could not be mistaken; as his impression that he was under the influence of that Spirit was, in fact, a claim to divine inspiration, so this advice should be regarded as of divine authority, and as binding on all. This interpretation is further demanded by the circumstances of the case. It was necessary that he should assert divine authority to counteract the teaching of the false instructors in Corinth; and that he should interpose that authority in prescribing rules for the government of the church there in view of the special temptations to which they were exposed.

Remarks On 1 Corinthians 7

We learn from this chapter:

1. The sacredness of the marriage union; and the nature of the feelings with which it should be entered; 1Co 7:1-13. On a most delicate subject Paul has shown a seriousness and delicacy of expression which can be found in no other writings, and which demonstrate how pure his own mind was, and how much it was filled with the fear of God. In all things his aim is to promote purity, and to keep from the Christian church the innumerable evils which everywhere abounded in the pagan world. The marriage connection should be formed in the fear of God. In all that union, the parties should seek the salvation of the soul; and so live as not to dishonor the religion which they profess.

2. The duty of laboring earnestly for the conversion of the party in the marriage connection that may be a stranger to piety; 1Co 7:16. This object should lie very near the heart; and it should be sought by all the means possible. By a pure and holy life; by exemplifying the nature of the gospel; by tenderness of conversation and of entreaty; and by fidelity in all the duties of life, we should seek the conversion and salvation of our partners in the marriage connection. Even if both are Christians, this great object should be one of constant solicitude - to advance the piety and promote the usefulness of the partner in life.

3. The duty of contentment in the sphere of life in which we are placed; 1Co 7:18 ff. It is no disgrace to be poor, for Jesus chose to be poor. It is no disgrace, though it is a calamity, to be a slave. It is no disgrace to be in an humble rank of life. It is disgraceful only to be a sinner, and to complain and repine at our allotment. God orders the circumstances of our life; and they are well ordered when under the direction of his hand. The great object should be to do right in the relation which we sustain in life. If poor, to be industrious, submissive, resigned, virtuous; if rich, to be grateful, benevolent, kind. If a slave or a servant, to be faithful, kind, and obedient; using liberty, if it can be lawfully obtained; resigned, and calm, and gentle, if by the providence of God such must continue to be the lot in life.

4. The duty of preserving the order and regularity of society; 1Co 7:20-23. The design of the gospel is not to produce insubordination or irregularity, it would not break up society; does not dissolve the bonds of social life; but it cements and sanctifies the ties which connect us with those around us. It is designed to promote human happiness; and that is promoted, not by resolving society into its original elements; not by severing the marriage tie, as atheists would do; not by teaching children to disregard and despise their parents, or the common courtesies of life, but by teaching them to maintain inviolate all these relations. Religion promotes the interests of society; it does not, like infidelity, dissolve them. It advances the cause of social virtue; it does not, like atheism, retard and annihilate it. Every Christian becomes a better parent, a more affectionate child, a kinder friend, a more tender husband or wife, a more kind neighbor, a better member of the community.

5. Change in a man’ s calling should not be made from a slight cause. A Christian should not make it unless his former calling were wrong, or unless he can by it extend his own usefulness. But when that can be done, he should do it, and do it without delay. If the course is wrong, it should be immediately abandoned. No consideration can make it right to continue it for a day or an hour, no matter what may be the sacrifice of property, it should be done. If a man is engaged in the slave-trade, or in smuggling goods, or in piracy, or highway robbery, or in the manufacture and sale of poison, it should be at once and forever abandoned. And in like manner, if a young man who is converted can increase his usefulness by changing his plan of life, it should be done as soon as practicable. If by becoming a minister of the gospel he can be a more useful man, every consideration demands that he should leave any other profession, however lucrative or pleasant, and submit to the self-denials, the cares, the trials, and the toils which attend a life devoted to Christ in the ministry in Christian or pagan lands. Though it should be attended with poverty, want, tears, toil, or shame, yet the single question is, "Can I be more useful to my Master there than in my present vocation?"If he can be, that is an indication of the will of God which he cannot disregard with impunity.

6. We should live above this world; 1Co 7:29-30. We should partake of all our pleasures, and endure all our sufferings, with the deep feeling that we have here no continuing city and no abiding place. Soon all our earthly pleasures will fade away; soon all our earthly sorrows will be ended. A conviction of the shortness of life will tend much to regulate our desires for earthly comforts, and will keep us from being improperly attached to them; and it will diminish our sorrows by the prospect that they will soon end.

7. We should not be immoderately affected with grief; 1Co 7:30. It will all soon end, in regard to Christians. Whether our tears arise from the consciousness of our sins or the sins of others; whether from persecution or contempt of the world; or whether from the loss of health, property, or friends, we should bear it all patiently, for it will soon end; a few days, and all will be over; and the last tear shall fall on our cheeks, and the last sigh be heaved from our bosom.

8. We should not be immoderate in our joy, 1Co 7:30. Our highest earthly joys will soon cease. Mirth, and the sound of the harp and the viol, the loud laugh and the song will soon close. What a change should this thought make in a world of gaiety, and mirth, and song! It should not make people gloomy and morose; but it should make them serious, calm, thoughtful. O, did all feel that death was near, that the solemn realities of eternity were approaching, what a change would it make in a frivilous and thoughtless world! How would it close the theater and the ball-room; how would it silence the jest, the jeer, and the loud laugh; and how would it diffuse seriousness and calmness over a now frivilous and thoughtless world! "Laughter is mad,"says Solomon; and in a world of sin, and sorrow, and death, assuredly seriousness and calm contemplation are demanded by every consideration.

9. What an effect would the thought that "time is short,"and that "the fashion of this world passeth away,"have on the lovers of wealth! It would:

(1) Teach them that property is of little value.

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 hat the possession of it can constitute no distinction beyond the grave: the rich man is just as soon reduced to dust, and is just as offensive in his splendid mausoleum, as the poor beggar.

\caps1 (3) a\caps0 man feeling this, would be led (or should be) to make a good use of his property on earth. See the note at Luk 16:1-9.

\caps1 (4) h\caps0 e would be led to seek a better inheritance, an interest in the treasures that no moth corrupts, and that never fade away. See the note at Mat 6:20. This single thought. that the fashion of this world is soon to pass away - an idea which no man can doubt or deny - if allowed to take firm hold of the mind, would change the entire aspect of the world.

10. We should endeavor so to live in all things as that our minds should not be oppressed with undue anxiety and care, 1Co 7:32. In all our arrangements and plans, and in all the relations of life, our grand object should be to have the mind free for the duties and privileges of religion. We should seek not to be encumbered with care; not to be borne down with anxiety; not to be unduly attached to the things of this life.

11. We should enter into the relations of life so as not to interfere with our personal piety or usefulness, but so as to promote both, 1Co 7:32-35. All our arrangements should be so formed as that we may discharge our religious duties, and promote our usefulness to our fellow men. But, alas, how many enter into the marriage relation with unChristian companions, whose active zeal is forever quenched by such a connection! How many form commercial connections or partnerships in business with those who are not Christians, where the result is to diminish their zeal for God, and to render their whole lives useless to the church! And how much do the cares of life, in all its relations, interfere with simple-hearted piety, and with the faithful discharge of the duties which we owe to God and to a dying world! May God of his mercy enable us so to live in all the relations of life as that our usefulness shall not be retarded but augmented; and so to live that we can see without one sigh of regret the "fashion of this world pass away;"our property or our friends removed; or even the magnificence of the entire world, with all its palaces, and temples, and "cloudcapped towers,"passing away amidst the fires that shall attend the consummation of all things!

Poole: 1Co 7:6 - -- Some refer these words to all that had gone before in this chapter; but the best interpreters rather refer them to what went immediately before in t...

Some refer these words to all that had gone before in this chapter; but the best interpreters rather refer them to what went immediately before in the preceding verse, declaring, that he had no express command from God, as to those things of abstaining for a time for fasting and prayer, and then coming together again, but he spake what he judged equitable and reasonable; but as to particular persons, they ought to judge and govern themselves according to their particular circumstances.

Poole: 1Co 7:7 - -- I would that all men were even as I myself: I would, in this place, can signify no more than, I could wish or desire, (if it were the will of God)...

I would that all men were even as I myself: I would, in this place, can signify no more than, I could wish or desire, (if it were the will of God), that all Christians had the gift of continency, which God (blessed be his name) hath given me: that this is meant, is plain by the next words, and 1Co 7:9 : it is apparent that Paul did not will this absolutely, for that had been to have willed the dissolution of the world, as well as the church, within the compass of that age.

But every man hath his proper gift of God, one after this manner, and another after that: But, saith the apostle, every one hath not the gift of continency, one hath it, another hath it not; which is the same thing which our Saviour said in reply to his disciples, saying: If the case of the man be so with his wife, it is not good to marry. All men cannot receive this saying, save they to whom it is given, Mat 19:10 .

Poole: 1Co 7:8 - -- By the unmarried and widows it is apparent that Paul means virgins that were never married, and such as, having been once married, had lost their h...

By the unmarried and widows it is apparent that Paul means virgins that were never married, and such as, having been once married, had lost their husbands: though the first word, in the Greek, had been significative enough of persons in both these states; yet the apostle’ s using of two words, makes it past dispute; when he saith, it is good for such to be as he was, his meaning is, that it was better with respect to the present circumstances of Christians, or it was convenient, in which notion good is often taken, not for what is absolutely good; and indeed the nature of all good lieth in the conveniency or suitableness of the thing so called to us; and though in the Divine precepts there is always such a suitableness, so as they must be always good, yet in other things, which God hath left to our liberty, (such as is this of marriage), a thing may be good or evil, as the circumstances of several persons, yea, of the same person, may vary. St. Paul considereth only the circumstances of the world common to all Christians, and upon them, determines this goodness, supposing the circumstances of the particular person not to rule otherwise. His not saying, it is good for them not to marry, but to be as he was, hath bred a question of no great import to be determined: Whether Paul was ever married or not? In the determination of which the ancients could not agree; but it is not worth spending our time about, considering that all agree he was at this time unmarried, which is all he doth here mean: if St. Paul was never married, we are sure Peter was, for we read of his wife’ s mother sick of a fever, Mar 1:30 .

Poole: 1Co 7:9 - -- That St. Paul’ s saying: It is good, & c. did not signify, it is the will of God, or, (as the papists would have it), it is my counsel in ord...

That St. Paul’ s saying: It is good, & c. did not signify, it is the will of God, or, (as the papists would have it), it is my counsel in order to your further perfection, is plain by his precept for them to marry if they could not contain; and this likewise lets us see that second marriages are not only lawful, but may be an incumbent duty, that is, if they who are concerned as to them cannot contain themselves within the bounds and rule of chastity, which must not only be interpreted with reference to acts of uncleanness. This is contradicted by the reason given by the apostle, determining that marriage was much more eligible than burning, which term signifies the inward fervour and eager inclinations of the mind, not the acts only of the outward man.

Poole: 1Co 7:10 - -- The apostle had spoke to the married before, but in another case, he now returneth in his discourse to them again, speaking to another case, which i...

The apostle had spoke to the married before, but in another case, he now returneth in his discourse to them again, speaking to another case, which it should seem they had put to him; what it was is not plainly expressed, but it may easily be gathered from 1Co 7:12,13 , as also from the apostle’ s determination in this verse: or it was this: Whether it was lawful for the husband to depart from his wife, or the wife from her husband, unless it were in the case of adultery; for though here be nothing spoken as to that case, yet it plainly must be excepted, as determined before by our Saviour; but as the Jews, so the heathens amongst whom these Corinthians lived, had entertained much too mean thoughts about the marriage bond, indulging themselves in a liberty to break it for every slight cause; and it should seem by 1Co 7:12,13 , it was judged by them a sufficient cause, if one of them were not converted to the faith of Christ. Now in this case, saith the apostle,

I command and what I tell you is the will of God; it is not I alone who command it, but you are to look upon it as the will of God concerning you, though revealed to you by me that am the minister of God to you.

Let not the wife depart from her husband she may be divorced from her husband in case of fornication, but let her not for any other cause make a voluntary secession.

Poole: 1Co 7:11 - -- How our translators came to translate cwrisyh , which is manifestly a verb passive, if she depart, I cannot tell. It signifieth, if she be depart...

How our translators came to translate cwrisyh , which is manifestly a verb passive, if she depart, I cannot tell. It signifieth, if she be departed, and so is as well significative of a being parted from her husband by a judicial act of divorce, as of a voluntary departing. The Jews were wont to give bills of divorce to their wives for any trivial cause. The word is to be interpreted as well of any legal divorce, not according to the true meaning of the Divine law, as concerning a voluntary secession; in which case the apostle commandeth that she should marry to no other: the reason is plain, because no such cause of divorce broke the bond of marriage; she was yet the wife of her former husband in God’ s eye and account, and committed adultery if she married to another, as our Saviour had determined, Mat 5:32 19:9 . But he gives her a liberty to

be reconciled to her husband In case that a woman put away by her husband became another man’ s wife, by the law, Deu 24:4 , she might not (though that latter husband died) return to her former husband; but in case she remained unmarried, she might be reconciled to him.

And let not the husband put away his wife the apostle giveth the same precept concerning husbands.

Poole: 1Co 7:12 - -- But to the rest speak I, not the Lord either as to the other part of your Epistle, or as to the cases of the rest mentioned in your Epistle, I shall ...

But to the rest speak I, not the Lord either as to the other part of your Epistle, or as to the cases of the rest mentioned in your Epistle, I shall give you my advice so far as I am instructed by the Holy Spirit of God, though our Lord Jesus Christ hath set no certain rule concerning them.

If any brother hath a wife that believeth not: that believeth not both here and 1Co 7:13 , signifieth, that hath not embraced the Christian faith, but still remaineth a pagan.

And she be pleased to dwell with him if there be no other matter of difference between such persons, save only in matter of religion, let him not for that put her away. If a Christian man or woman had their choice to make, it were unlawful for either of them to make choice of a pagan for their yoke-fellow; but if, after marriage, either the husband or the wife embraceth the Christian faith, the other correlate still abiding a pagan, their difference in religion is not a sufficient ground for a separation: this seemeth to be the apostle’ s meaning. The case seemeth a little different in the opinion of some divines, when the idolater or idolatress blasphemeth God and the true religion, and is continually tempting the correlate to apostacy: but it is hard to determine against the plain precept of so great an apostle, especially considering the reason by which he backeth his precept.

Poole: 1Co 7:13-14 - -- Ver. 13,14. Sanctifying, in holy writ, generally signifieth the separation or setting apart of a person or thing from a common, to and for a holy use...

Ver. 13,14. Sanctifying, in holy writ, generally signifieth the separation or setting apart of a person or thing from a common, to and for a holy use, whether it be by some external rites and ceremonies, or by the infusing of some inward spiritual habits. In this place it seemeth to have a different sense from what it usually hath in holy writ; for it can neither signify the sanctification of the person by infused habits of grace; for neither is the unbelieving husband thus sanctified by the believing wife, neither is the unbelieving wife thus sanctified by the believing husband; nor are either of them thus set apart for the service of God by any legal rites: which hath made a great difference in the notions of interpreters, how the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the believing wife, or the unbelieving wife, by the believing husband. Some think it signifies no more than prepared for God, as sanctified signifies, Isa 13:3 . Others think they are sanctified by a moral denomination. I rather think it signifies, brought into such a state, that the believer, without offence to the law of God, may continue in a married estate with such a yoke-fellow; and the state of marriage is a holy state, notwithstanding the disparity with reference to religion.

Else were your children unclean otherwise, he saith, the children begotten and born of such parents would be unclean, in the same state that the children of pagan parents are without the church, not within the covenant, not under the promise. In one sense all children are unclean, i.e. children of wrath, born in sin, and brought forth in iniquity; but all are not in this sense unclean, some are within the covenant of grace, within the church, capable of baptism.

But now are they holy these are those that are called holy; not as inwardly renewed and sanctified, but relatively, in the same sense that all the Jewish nation are called a holy people: and possibly this may give us a further light to understand the term sanctifed, in the former part of the verse. The unbelieving husband is so far sanctified by the believing wife, and the unbelieving wife so far sanctified by the believing husband, that as they may lawfully continue in their married relation, and live together as man and wife, so the issue coming from them both shall be by God counted in covenant with him, and have a right to baptism, which is one of the seals of that covenant, as well as those children both whose parents are believers.

Poole: 1Co 7:15 - -- If the unbelieving husband or the unbelieving wife will leave his or her correlate, that is, so leave them as to return no more to live as a husband...

If the unbelieving husband or the unbelieving wife will leave his or her correlate, that is, so leave them as to return no more to live as a husband or as a wife with her or him that is Christian,

let him depart Such a person hath broken the bond of marriage, and in such cases Christians are

not under bondage they are not tied by law to fetch them again, nor by the laws of God to keep themselves unmarried for their perverseness. But it may be objected, that nothing but adultery, by the Divine law, breaketh that bond.

Answer. That is denied. Nothing but adultery is a justifiable cause of divorce: no man may put away his wife, nor any wife put away her husband, but for adultery. But the husband’ s voluntary leaving his wife, or the wife’ s voluntary leaving her husband, with a resolution to return no more to them, breaks also the bond of marriage, frustrating it as to the ends for which God hath appointed it; and, after all due means used to bring again the party departing to their duty, doth certainly free the correlate. So that although nothing can justify repudiation, or putting away a wife or a husband, and marrying another, but the adultery of the person so divorced and repudiated; yet the departure either of husband or wife without the other’ s consent for a long time, and refusal to return after all due means used, especially if the party so going away doth it out of a hatred and abomination of the other’ s religion, will justify the persons so deserted, after due waiting and use of means to reduce him or her to their duty, wholly to cast off the person deserting; for no Christian in such a case, by God’ s law, is under bondage.

But God hath called us to peace for God hath called Christians unto peace, and in his ordinance of marriage aimed at the quiet and peace of his people in their service of him in their families and relations; and therefore as Christians ought not to disturb the peace of their own consciences, turning away their relations, though they be unbelievers; yet neither are they bound, if such will leave them, to court their own continual trouble and disturbance.

Poole: 1Co 7:16 - -- The apostle having before determined the lawfulness of a Christian husband’ s or wife’ s abiding in a state of marriage with a wife or hus...

The apostle having before determined the lawfulness of a Christian husband’ s or wife’ s abiding in a state of marriage with a wife or husband that was an infidel, if she or he were willing to abide with the believer, now argues the great advantage which might be from it, for the glory of God, and the good of the soul of such husband or wife.

What knowest thou, O wife? saith he; it is not certain that God will so far bless thy converse with thy husband or wife, as that thou shalt, by thy instruction, admonition, or example, be an occasion or instrument to bring them to Christ; but it is neither impossible nor improbable, and their willingness (notwithstanding their difference from thee in religion) yet to abide with thee, may give thee some hopes that they will hearken to thee. They are often (in the language of holy writ) said to save others, who are instrumental to bring them to Christ, 1Co 9:22 1Ti 4:16 Jam 5:20 . We ought to bear with many inconveniences to ourselves, where our bearing with them may any way promote the glory of God or the good of souls.

Poole: 1Co 7:17 - -- Calling in this place signifieth that station and course of life, wherein by the providence of God any man is set. Some think, that this precept hat...

Calling in this place signifieth that station and course of life, wherein by the providence of God any man is set. Some think, that this precept hath a special reference to what went before, as if the sense were this: If God by his providence hath so ordered it that thy heart be changed, thy wife’ s or thy husband’ s heart being not yet changed, but he or she remaining pagans, yet let not this cause any separation between you, but, unless the unbeliever will depart, live yet as man and wife together, mutually performing conjugal offices each to other. But the following verses, 1Co 7:21,22where the apostle speaks of called being a servant, show this interpretation to be too narrow. The sense of the text is, that the profession of Christianity is consistent with any honest calling or course of life, and it is the will of God tliat Christians should not pretend their profession of religion, to excuse them from the duties of any relation wherein they are set.

And so ordain I in all churches this is a universal rule, and concerned not the church of Corinth only, but all other churches of Christ, being an apostolical constitution.

Poole: 1Co 7:18 - -- Is any one who was a native Jew, and so circumcised according to the Jewish law, converted (while he is in that state) to the faith of Christ? Let h...

Is any one who was a native Jew, and so circumcised according to the Jewish law, converted (while he is in that state) to the faith of Christ? Let him not affect the state of him that, having been formerly a Gentile, was never circumcised. On the other side, is any, being a native Gentile, and so not circumcised, converted to Christianity? Let not him affect the state of one converted from Judaism, who was circumcised. This is, doubtless, the sense of the verse, not, (as some would have it), let him not endeavour by art to make himself uncircumcised, which was the wicked practice of some, (for a better compliance with the Gentiles), of whom we read, /Apc 1Mac 1:15 .

Poole: 1Co 7:19 - -- Circumcision was an ordinance of God, a sign of God’ s covenant, as necessary to salvation in its time, as the fufilling of any precept of the ...

Circumcision was an ordinance of God, a sign of God’ s covenant, as necessary to salvation in its time, as the fufilling of any precept of the law contained in ordinances: and uncircumcision also was something; for by the law relating to that ordinance, the uncircumcised male is determined to have broken God’ s covenant, and determined to a cutting off, Gen 17:10-14 . But in the present state of the church, circumcision was of no value or moment in the business of salvation: In Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth any thing, nor uncircumcision, but faith which worketh by love, Gal 5:6 .

Poole: 1Co 7:20 - -- Let every man abide in the same state and condition of life in which he was when he was first converted to the faith of Christ, that is, supposing tha...

Let every man abide in the same state and condition of life in which he was when he was first converted to the faith of Christ, that is, supposing that he was in an honest course of life; for we read in the Acts that the conjurers burnt their books, and unlawful courses of life must not be adhered to after men have once given up their names to Christ. The apostle’ s design is only to show, that the profession of Christianity maketh no state of life unlawful, which was before that profession lawful, nor dischargeth any from such as were before the duties of persons in their circumstances and relations. They too far strain this text, who interpret it into an obligation upon all men, not to alter that particular way and course of life and trading to which they were educated, and in which they formerly have been engaged; though such a thing be of too great moment and consequence for any to do without just advice and deliberation. The world is a mutable thing, and trades and particular courses of life wear out, and what will now bring in a due livelihood, possibly seven years hence will not furnish any with bread; and it is unreasonable in such a case to think, that the rule of Christian profession ties up a man under these changes of providence to such a particular course of life, as he cannot, in it, in the sweat of his face eat his bread.

Poole: 1Co 7:21 - -- Art thou called being a servant? care not for it: If while thou art a servant to another in any honest employment, thou art converted to the Christia...

Art thou called being a servant? care not for it: If while thou art a servant to another in any honest employment, thou art converted to the Christian religion, let it not trouble thee, mind it not. A man may be the servant of Christ, and yet a servant to men in any honest employment.

But if thou mayest be made free by the favour of thy friends, with the consent of thy master,

use it rather that is, (say some), rather choose to be a servant still, (which indeed in some cases may be the duty of a good Christian), that is, if thou seest, that in that station thou canst better serve God and the interest of thy master’ s or other souls. But it is more probable the sense is, make use of thy liberty rather; for certain it is, that the free-man is ordinarily at more advantage for the service of God than he that is a servant.

Poole: 1Co 7:22 - -- For the state of a servant to men no way prejudiceth a man as to his spiritual liberty; a servant and a free-man, considered with reference to Chris...

For the state of a servant to men no way prejudiceth a man as to his spiritual liberty; a servant and a free-man, considered with reference to Christ, are both one; a servant may be as near the kingdom of heaven as a free-man; and let a man be in never so good a state of civil liberty, yet, if he be a Christian, he is still a servant of Christ, and bound in all things to obey him. As to the new man, there is neither bond nor free, but Christ is all and in all.

Poole: 1Co 7:23 - -- What price we are bought with we heard, 1Co 6:20 : the apostle there pressed it upon us as our duty to glorify God with our bodies and our spirits...

What price we are bought with we heard, 1Co 6:20 : the apostle there pressed it upon us as our duty to glorify God with our bodies and our spirits; here he presseth upon us another duty, viz. upon that consideration not to be

the servants of men by which some think he forbiddeth the selling themselves as slaves to infidels; others think that he only forbiddeth eye-service, as the apostle calls it, Eph 6:6 ; while in the mean time they might be the servants of men, if they served them as the servants of Christ, doing the will of God from the heart; with good will doing service, as to the Lord, and not to men. But the most probable interpretation is: Be not servants to the lusts of men: wherein you can serve men, and in the same actions also serve God, and be obedient to his will, you may be the servants of men; but be not servants of men in such actions wherein, to serve them, you must disobey God.

Poole: 1Co 7:24 - -- In whatsoever state or condition, whether he be married or unmarried, whether he be a master or a servant, whether he were before circumcised or unc...

In whatsoever state or condition, whether he be married or unmarried, whether he be a master or a servant, whether he were before circumcised or uncircumcised, let him not think Christianity obligeth him to alter it; he may abide in it, only he must

abide in it with God as one who remembereth God’ s eye is upon him, and seeth him, and that he is bound to approve himself in it unto God, and to keep a good conscience towards him, as one that is a member of the church of God, and under the laws of it.

Poole: 1Co 7:25 - -- He had before spoken to married persons and widows, now he comes to speak concerning virgins and though he mentions only the female sex, yet the f...

He had before spoken to married persons and widows, now he comes to speak

concerning virgins and though he mentions only the female sex, yet the following words show that his advice extended to both. As to them he saith, he had no special direction from Christ, none that would suit the case of every virgin; but yet he would give his advice, what seemed to him best. And he would have them look upon him

as one that himself had received mercy from the Lord and as he desired to be faithful in the discharge of his trust, so might and ought to have credit given him in what he said. In which sense we read in Scripture of a faithful saying, a faithful Creator, a faithful man, & c.

Poole: 1Co 7:26 - -- Good here signifieth convenient, (as before), if other circumstances of particular persons make it not sinful; or better with respect to the present...

Good here signifieth convenient, (as before), if other circumstances of particular persons make it not sinful; or better with respect to

the present distress or necessity: by which, without doubt, the apostle meaneth, not the common necessities of all men that are born once to die, (which is the more easy the fewer relations we have to part from), nor yet of family troubles and concerns, for there is none who hath a family in this world to look after, but will have trouble in the flesh; but the continual troubles with which the church of God was disquieted, as the ark upon the waters, and the more special troubles of the primitive church; for though their great persecutions from the heathen were not, possibly, at that time begun, yet Christ had foretold them, and the apostles had them in a very near prospect (Paul is thought to have died the tenth or eleventh year of Nero). For this present necessity or distress, the apostle gives his opinion, that it was convenient and better, for those that could honestly abstain from marriage, to keep themselves in their single and unmarried condition.

Poole: 1Co 7:27 - -- Art thou bound by marriage, or bound by contract, do not use any sinful ways to be loosed from that bond, either by divorce or by a voluntary depart...

Art thou bound by marriage, or bound by contract, do not use any sinful ways to be loosed from that bond, either by divorce or by a voluntary departure: if the unbeliever will depart, he or she may, you are not obliged to court their stay, but do not you put him or her away. Are you free from a wife, either as yet unmarried, or by the hand of God separated, in case you can without sin, abstain. If your circumstances be such as they do not oblige you to marriage, do not seek a wife; the times are like to be full of trouble and difficulty. Our Master said, Woe unto them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days! Mat 24:19 .

Poole: 1Co 7:28 - -- I would not have you mistake me, as if I judged marriage sinful for persons in any state or condition, or of any sex; but those that are married in ...

I would not have you mistake me, as if I judged marriage sinful for persons in any state or condition, or of any sex; but those that are married in any time, will find troubles about the things of this life, and those that marry in such times as these are, and you are like further to see, will meet with more than ordinary troubles of this nature: I only would spare you, and have you keep yourselves as free as you can: or:

I spare you any further discourse of that nature, not willing to torment you before the time cometh.

Poole: 1Co 7:29 - -- He had before spoken to what concerned some, now he comes to what concerneth all. The time (saith he) is short furled up, like sails when the mar...

He had before spoken to what concerned some, now he comes to what concerneth all.

The time (saith he) is short furled up, like sails when the mariner comes near his port. He either meaneth the time of this life, or the time of the world’ s duration; we often find the apostles speaking of their times as the last times (and in these senses all are concerned): or the time of the church’ s rest and tranquillity, which they had hitherto enjoyed in a far more perfect degree than they enjoyed them soon after this, when ten persecutions followed immediately one upon the neck of another.

It remaineth, that both they that have wives be as though they had none therefore (saith the apostle) it is the concernment of all Christians, not to indulge themselves too much in the pleasures and contentments of this life; but if ye be married, or shall marry, you will be concerned to keep your hearts as loose from the contentment and satisfaction men use to take in their wives, as if you had no wives at all.

Poole: 1Co 7:30 - -- And they that weep, as though they wept not this consideration also should weigh with those who have a more afflicted portion in this life, and are m...

And they that weep, as though they wept not this consideration also should weigh with those who have a more afflicted portion in this life, and are mourners for the loss of their near relations; they have but lost what they could not long have kept, and for the time they kept them must have enjoyed them, probably, with a great deal of sorrow and bitterness.

And they that rejoice, as though they rejoiced not and so for any of those who rejoiced in any worldly enjoyments, the shortness of the time they are like to have them to rejoice in, should admonish them to govern and moderate their joy, for it is like to be but like the crackling of thorns under a pot.

And that they buy as though they possessed not and those that have liberal possessions of good things in this life, they should look upon them as none of theirs, and use them as not like to be their possessions long.

Poole: 1Co 7:31 - -- And they that use this world, as not abusing it: while you have any thing of this world’ s goods you may use them, yea, you must use them, witho...

And they that use this world, as not abusing it: while you have any thing of this world’ s goods you may use them, yea, you must use them, without them you cannot live in the world; but the consideration how little the time is you are like to have them to use, should govern you in the use of them, so as you ought to take heed you do not use them to any other purpose, or for any other end, than that for which God hath appointed and given them to you.

For the fashion of this world passeth away for this world is like a stage or theatre where are diversities of scenes, and the present scene abideih but for a little time, then passeth, and another scene or figure of things appeareth: those who appear this day in the form of princes and nobles, tomorrow appear as beggars, and persons of a low estate and degree.

Poole: 1Co 7:32 - -- But I would have you without carefulness the reason why I have advised (during the present distressed estate of the church) a single rather than a ma...

But I would have you without carefulness the reason why I have advised (during the present distressed estate of the church) a single rather than a married life, for those to whom God hath given the gift of continency, is, that those who are Christians might live as free from such cares as divide and distract men’ s and women’ s minds, as they possibly can.

He that is unmarried careth for the things that belong to the Lord, how he may please the Lord: the single person that hath a spiritual heart, disposed to pious performances, being free from other distractions and cares, caused by worldly occasions, will spend all his thoughts about his duty toward God, and how to please him.

Poole: 1Co 7:33 - -- But he that is married hath other things which he must take care about; for besides that he is obliged to provide for his family, husbands and wives...

But he that is married hath other things which he must take care about; for besides that he is obliged to provide for his family, husbands and wives are under some obligations to please each other by divertisements, which, though not in themselves sinful, yet take up time, which those free from such relations may spend more religiously.

Poole: 1Co 7:34 - -- There is the same difference between a married woman and a single woman, as there is between a married man and a single man. If a woman be unmarried...

There is the same difference between a married woman and a single woman, as there is between a married man and a single man. If a woman be unmarried, and be piously disposed, she hath leisure and opportunity enough to mind the things of God; but if she be married, she will then be obliged to attend secular affairs, to take care for her family, and to please her husband. It is the same thing that was before said of the man. The sense is, that a conjugal relation draws along with it many diversions, from which a single life is free.

Poole: 1Co 7:35 - -- And this I speak for your own profit for your advantage both as to your converse in the world, and also for your religious conversation, and the perf...

And this I speak for your own profit for your advantage both as to your converse in the world, and also for your religious conversation, and the performance of those duties which you owe unto God; for those that are married must meet with more troubles and cares in this life, and cannot have so much time and leisure for religious duties, as others have that are not entangled in the domestic cares of a family.

Not that I may cast a snare upon you yet I would not bring you under a snare, imposing what God hath not imposed, and obliging you where God hath not obliged you.

But for that which is comely the word here is euschmon , it strictly signifies a thing of a good figure, and is translated in Scripture honourable, Mar 15:43 Act 13:50 17:11 ; where it signifies what is of a fair and good repute in the eye of the world; which is also the sense of it, 1Co 12:24 , where we read of the comely parts of man’ s body; but in this place the word signifies most largely, the same with profitable and convenient. For marriage is a state which neither is in itself indecent, nor ever was so reputed in the world by any nation, and the Scripture tells us, that marriage is honourable amongst all, Heb 13:4 . The word therefore here is of the same significancy with sumferon , which in the beginning of the verse is translated profit, and 1Co 6:12 , is translated expedient. And that you may attend upon the Lord without distraction; the phrase in the Greek is very difficult to be translated properly into our English language, word for word it is, to sit well to the Lord without distraction; our translators render it, attend upon the Lord. We have something like it in our language, when we express our diligent attendance to a thing, under the notion of sitting close to a business; which is opposed to such an attendance to business as we give when we have many avocations and callings away, so as we cannot sit close to it. The apostle saith, that this was the end of his advising those who could contain not to marry under that state of things in the world referring to the church, that they might with more ease and conveniency attend to the great concerns of their souls, without those distracting and dividing thoughts which they must have who were entangled with domestic businesses and relations.

Poole: 1Co 7:36 - -- But if any man think that he behaveth himself uncomely: there is a general and a particular uncomeliness; some things are uncomely with respect to al...

But if any man think that he behaveth himself uncomely: there is a general and a particular uncomeliness; some things are uncomely with respect to all persons; of such things the apostle doth not here speak; but of a particular uncomeliness with respect to the circumstances of particular persons. Neither doth uncomely here signify a mere indecency and unhandsomeness, but such a behaviour as suiteth not the general rules of the gospel, which judgment is to be ruled by the circumstances of persons, as they more or less desire marriage.

If she pass the flower of her age if she be of marriageable years, or rather, if she beginneth to grow old,

and need so require and be desirous of marriage, so as the parent seeth reason to fear that, if he gives her not in marriage, she will so dispose of herself without asking her father’ s advice or leave, or be exposed, possibly, to worse temptations: which two things seem to interpret that term, if need so require.

Let him do what he will, he sinneth not: let them marry in such a case as this a Christian parent shall not sin, if he disposeth her in marriage let her marry to such a person as she loveth, and her parent seeth proper for her. He speaks in the plural number because marriage is between two persons. The reason of this determination is, because the apostle, in his former discourse, had no where condemned a married estate during the present distress of things, as sinful or unlawful, but only as inexpedient, or not so expedient as a single life during the present distress; he had before determined, 1Co 7:9 , that it was better to marry than to burn. Now no inexpediency of a thing can balance what is plainly sinful. If therefore the case be such, that a man or woman must marry, or sin, through marriage brings with it more care and trouble, yet it is to be preferred before plain sinning.

Poole: 1Co 7:37 - -- Nevertheless he that standeth stedfast in his heart if a man be resolved to keep his daughter a virgin, not uncertain in his own mind, and wavering w...

Nevertheless he that standeth stedfast in his heart if a man be resolved to keep his daughter a virgin, not uncertain in his own mind, and wavering what he should do, upon a just consideration of circumstances;

having no necessity and doth not see a necessity to dispose of her, either for the avoiding some sin against God, or for the better providing for himself and the rest of his family;

but hath power over his own will but hath a perfect freedom in his own will, so that his will be not contradicted by his daughter’ s fondness of a married life; for in such a case the father, though he would willingly not dispose of his daughter in marriage, yet ought to be overruled by the will of his daughter, and so hath not a power over his own will, being forced by the rules of religion to take care of the soul and spiritual welfare of his child; for though the parent hath a great power over his child, and ought to consent to the marriage of his child, yet he hath no such power as wholly to hinder them from marriage.

And hath so decreed in his heart that he will keep his virgin if he be fully resolved, upon a due consideration of all circumstances, and the virgin be satisfied, and yields up herself in the case to her father’ s pleasure, in such a case, if the father doth not put her upon marriage, but resolves to keep her unmarried, he

doeth well that is, not only he shall not sin against God, but he doth that which is more eligible, considering the present circumstances of things, and better than if he did find out a husband for her, and give her to him (as it is expounded in the next verse).

Poole: 1Co 7:38 - -- So then he that giveth her in marriage doeth well: there is no general rule for all parents in this case, where the duty or sin of parents may arise ...

So then he that giveth her in marriage doeth well: there is no general rule for all parents in this case, where the duty or sin of parents may arise from their or their children’ s different circumstances. But supposing that a parent, having duly weighed all circumstances, be fully resolved, and he finds the child’ s will concurring, that she can forbear, and is willing to do in the case what her parent desires; in such a case as this, if the parent disposeth her in marriage, I cannot say he sinneth, but he doth what he may do.

But he that giveth her not in marriage doeth better but with reference to the present state of things in the church and in the world, and with reference to the young woman’ s liberty for the service of God, he doth better, if he doth not so dispose her. The thing is in itself indifferent, and Christians must be in it ruled and inclined one way or another from circumstances.

Poole: 1Co 7:39 - -- The apostle all along this chapter hath been speaking to several cases, which the church of Corinth had put to him concerning marriage; some that co...

The apostle all along this chapter hath been speaking to several cases, which the church of Corinth had put to him concerning marriage; some that concerned persons already married, others that concerned such as were single, having been never married; he shutteth up his discourse with advice which relateth to such as had lost their husbands, with reference to second marriages. As to this he determineth, that no woman might marry again while her first husband lived; that is, unless her husband, be legally divorced from her for adultery, or unless her husband, being a heathen, had voluntarily deserted her: but if her husband were dead, she might marry to whom she would; yet she was not at such liberty, as that she might marry an unbeliever. Unbelievers are either heathens, or Christians in name, but such as are idolaters, or profane persons, or heretics, who hold such tenets as are inconsistent with any true faith in Jesus Christ. This phrase,

only in the Lord seemeth to oblige godly women, not only to avoid marrying with heathens, but with nominal Christians; that is, such who, although they have been baptized, and own Christ with their tongues, yet hold such damnable opinions, or live such profane lives, or worship God in such an idolatrous manner, as is inconsistent with any true faith in Christ. The reason of the precept holds as well to the latter as to the former.

Poole: 1Co 7:40 - -- But if other circumstances concur, that a widow can abide without marriage without waxing wanton, and running into temptation, and so as to manage h...

But if other circumstances concur, that a widow can abide without marriage without waxing wanton, and running into temptation, and so as to manage her outward concerns without the help of a husband, my opinion is, that she is more happy if she keeps herself a widow, and doth not marry again; not more happy because more holy, or in a fairer road to the kingdom of heaven, but upon the two accounts before mentioned; more happy because free from troubles and distractions, and because she will be more free and at liberty to mind heavenly things.

And I think also that I have the Spirit of God and, saith he, I think I know as much of the mind of the Holy Spirit of God, as either those who teach you otherwise, or who may have opinions contrary to mine in this case.

Haydock: 1Co 7:6 - -- By indulgence. That is, by a condescension to your weakness. (Challoner)

By indulgence. That is, by a condescension to your weakness. (Challoner)

Haydock: 1Co 7:7-8 - -- I would, or I could wish you all were even as myself, and as it is said in the next verse, to continue unmarried as I do. From hence it is evi...

I would, or I could wish you all were even as myself, and as it is said in the next verse, to continue unmarried as I do. From hence it is evident, that St. Paul was not then married, who according to the opinion of the ancient fathers, was never married. But when the apostle says, I would this as to you all, he only signifies what could be wished for, the particular good of every one considered as a particular person, but what cannot be hoped for, considering the state of mankind in general, and the temptations, and frailty of men. ---

But every one hath his proper gift from God, so that some prudently embrace a single life, and also make a religious vow of always living so, as it has been practised by a great number both of men and women in all ages, ever since Christ's time. Others have not this more perfect gift: they find themselves not disposed to lead, or vow a single life, they marry lawfully: it is better to marry than to burn, or be burnt by violent temptations of concupiscence, by which they do not contain themselves from disorders of that kind. It is against both the Latin and Greek text to translate, they cannot contain themselves, as in the Protestant and Mr. N....'s translation. Dr. Wells, in his paraphrase, gives the sense of this place in these words: The inconveniences of marriage are to be undergone, rather than such sinful imaginations, or practises, as arise from the flames of an ungovernable lust. They therefore that are unmarried or widows, (to whom St. Paul speaks in these two verses) may have recourse to marriage as a remedy. But let it be observed, that when St. Paul allows of marriage, he speaks not of those who have already made a vow of living always a single life. Vows made to God must be kept. (Psalm lxxv. 12.; Ecclesiastes v. 3.) And St. Paul expressly says of such persons, who have made a vow of perpetual continency, and afterwards marry, that they incur damnation, because they violate their first faith, or vow made to God. See 1 Timothy v. 12. This saying, therefore, it is better to marry than to burn, cannot justify the sacrilegious marriages of priests, or of any others who were under such vows. There are other remedies which they are bound to make use of, and by which they may obtain the gift of continency and chastity. They must ask this gift by fervent prayers to God, who give a good spirit to them that ask it. (Luke xi. 15.) They must join fasting, alms, and the practice of self-denials, so often recommended in the gospel. See the annotations on Matthew xix. The like remedies, and not others, must they use, who being already in wedlock, are under such violent temptations, that they are continually in danger of violating, or do violate the chastity of the marriage-bed. For example, when married persons are divorced from bed and board, when long absent from one another, when sick and disabled, when one has an inveterate aversion to the other: they cannot marry another, but they can, and must use other remedies. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Co 7:9 - -- If they do not contain. This is spoken of such as are free; and not of such as by vow have given their first faith to God; to whom, if they will use...

If they do not contain. This is spoken of such as are free; and not of such as by vow have given their first faith to God; to whom, if they will use proper means to obtain it, God will never refuse the gift of continency. Some translators have corrupted this text, by rendering it, if they cannot contain. (Challoner)

Haydock: 1Co 7:10 - -- But to them that are married, &c. He tells these persons that they ought not to part, or if a separation for weighty reasons can be allowed, neither...

But to them that are married, &c. He tells these persons that they ought not to part, or if a separation for weighty reasons can be allowed, neither party can marry another. (Witham) ---

That the wife. Jesus Christ has expressly declared, that in one case only a divorce may be allowable, and that is in the case of adultery. (Estius)

Haydock: 1Co 7:12-17 - -- For to the rest, &c. This was a case entirely new, which the wisdom of the apostle regulates according to the laws of charity. Tertullian thinks th...

For to the rest, &c. This was a case entirely new, which the wisdom of the apostle regulates according to the laws of charity. Tertullian thinks that some of the faithful, who had been converted from paganism, did not esteem it lawful to live any longer with their wives, who were yet buried in the superstitions of idolatry, which scruples St. Paul answers, guided as he was, by the particular lights of the Holy Ghost. (Calmet) ---

Not the Lord. That is, it is the command of the Lord, for such even as are separated, not to marry to another, but when I advised the unmarried not to marry, this is a counsel, or advice, not a divine precept, which doctrine he repeats again before the end of this chapter, ver. 25, 28, and 39. ---

If any brother have a wife that believeth not, &c. St. Paul speaks of two that were joined by a contract of marriage, when both of them were infidels, and that one of them is converted to the Christian faith: we do not read of any precept that Christ gave, as to those marriages, but the apostle seems to order by his apostolical authority, that they continue as man and wife, unless the party that remains still an infidel, will needs depart; then, says the apostle, let such an one depart. There is also another case, to wit, when the man or woman remaining an infidel, will not live without continual injuries and blasphemies against God and the Catholic religion, so that there can be no peace on that account betwixt them. In these two cases, according to the canons of the Church, it is looked upon as no marriage, so that the party converted may marry another. And this seems grounded on the reason, which the apostle here gave, that God hath called us in peace. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Co 7:14-16 - -- Is sanctified. The meaning is not that the faith of the husband, or the wife is of itself sufficient to put the unbelieving party, or their children...

Is sanctified. The meaning is not that the faith of the husband, or the wife is of itself sufficient to put the unbelieving party, or their children, in the state of grace and salvation: but that it is very often an occasion of their sanctification, by bringing them to the true faith. (Challoner) ---

Sanctification which has different significations, cannot here signify that an infidel is truly and properly sanctified, or justified, by being married to a faithful believer; therefore we can only understand an improper sanctification, so that such an infidel, though not yet converted, need not be looked upon as unclean, but in the dispositions of being converted, especially living peaceably together, and consenting that their children be baptized, by which they are truly sanctified. ---

How knowest thou, O wife? &c. These words seem to give the reason, why they may part, when they cannot live peaceably, and when there is little prospect that the party that is an infidel will be converted. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Co 7:17 - -- But[3] as the Lord hath distributed,... and called every one, &c. St. Paul proceeds to other points of discipline, that persons converted may rema...

But[3] as the Lord hath distributed,... and called every one, &c. St. Paul proceeds to other points of discipline, that persons converted may remain and continue in the same employments, and lawful state of life as before, that it is nothing to the purpose, whether before his conversion he was a circumcised Jew, or an uncircumcised Gentile, circumcision being no longer of obligation in the new law. If any one that is converted was a bond-man, or a slave, let him not be concerned at this, but use it rather, [4] which many interpret, let him rather endeavour to be made free, though St. John Chrysostom and others understand, let him rather remain content with his servile condition. Perhaps it was an admonition to those new converts, who might imagine that their Christian liberty exempted them from being servant of men. However, he gives them this great comfort, that such an one is the Lord's free-man, that is, whoever is a Christian, and in the grace of God; but he adds, let him not be a slave to men, that is, not follow their sinful ways, nor consent to any thing that is criminal. (Witham) ---

All consists in doing the will of God, by loving him with our whole heart; without this, all is illusion. To attach ourselves to exterior practices contrary to the order of God, is the superstition of circumcision; to despise what comes from God, is the pride of uncircumcision.

===============================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Nisi, &c. Greek: ei me, it bears the sense here of but.

Haydock: 1Co 7:21 - -- [BIBLIOGRAPHY] Magis utere, Greek: mallon chresai. St. John Chrysostom says, Greek: touteti mallon douleue. ====================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Magis utere, Greek: mallon chresai. St. John Chrysostom says, Greek: touteti mallon douleue.

====================

Haydock: 1Co 7:23 - -- With a price. Viz. with the price of the precious blood of Christ. (Estius) --- Him only should we serve, for whatever draws us from this allegianc...

With a price. Viz. with the price of the precious blood of Christ. (Estius) ---

Him only should we serve, for whatever draws us from this allegiance, is perfect servitude, such as the love of any person or thing out of God.

Haydock: 1Co 7:25-28 - -- Now concerning virgins, &c. He turns his discourse again to the unmarried, who (if they have made no vow) may lawfully marry, though he is far from ...

Now concerning virgins, &c. He turns his discourse again to the unmarried, who (if they have made no vow) may lawfully marry, though he is far from commanding every one to marry, as when he says, seek not a wife. And such shall have tribulation of the flesh, cares, troubles, vexations in the state of marriage, but I spare you, I leave you to your liberty of marrying, or not marrying, and will not discourage you be setting forth the crosses of a married life. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Co 7:29 - -- The time is short, &c. Incomparable instructions to the end of this chapter, which are not obscure. (Witham)

The time is short, &c. Incomparable instructions to the end of this chapter, which are not obscure. (Witham)

Haydock: 1Co 7:30 - -- And they who weep. In this passage the apostle teaches us, in the midst of our greatest afflictions not to suffer ourselves to be overwhelmed with g...

And they who weep. In this passage the apostle teaches us, in the midst of our greatest afflictions not to suffer ourselves to be overwhelmed with grief, but to recollect that the time of this life is short, and that temporary pains will be recompensed with the never-fading joys of eternity. (Estius)

Haydock: 1Co 7:33 - -- It is far easier to give our whole heart and application without any the least reserve to God, than to divide them without injustice.

It is far easier to give our whole heart and application without any the least reserve to God, than to divide them without injustice.

Haydock: 1Co 7:36 - -- Let him do what he will, he sinneth not, &c. The meaning is not as libertines would have it, that persons may do what they will, and not sin; provid...

Let him do what he will, he sinneth not, &c. The meaning is not as libertines would have it, that persons may do what they will, and not sin; provided they afterwards marry: but that the father with regard to the giving his virgin in marriage, may do as he pleaseth: and that it will be no sin to him if she marries. (Challoner)

Haydock: 1Co 7:38 - -- He that giveth her not, doth better. And more blessed shall she be, if she so remains, according to my counsel. It is very strange if any one, wh...

He that giveth her not, doth better. And more blessed shall she be, if she so remains, according to my counsel. It is very strange if any one, who reads this chapter without prejudices, does not clearly see, that St. Paul advises, and prefers the state of virginity to that of a married life. ---

I think that I also have the spirit of God. He puts them in mind, by this modest way of speaking, of what they cannot doubt of, as to so great an apostle. (Witham) ---

It is worthy our notice, that St. Paul on every occasion avoids the least appearance of vanity, and frequently when delivering his own opinion, gives us only a hint, hoping that we shall supply the rest. Of this apostle's modesty in this particular, we have many instances in his writings, as in ver. 26. "I think, therefore, that this is good;" and likewise in chap. iv. ver. 9. "For I think that God." (Estius)

Gill: 1Co 7:6 - -- But I speak this by permission,.... Referring either to what he had said before, though not to all; not to 1Co 7:2 that for the avoiding of fornicatio...

But I speak this by permission,.... Referring either to what he had said before, though not to all; not to 1Co 7:2 that for the avoiding of fornication, every man should make use of his own wife, and every woman of her own husband; since this is not by permission, but by command, Gen 2:24 that carnal copulation should be between one man and one woman in a married state; nor to 1Co 7:3 for that married persons ought to render due benevolence to, and not defraud each other, having a power over each other's bodies, is a precept, and not a permission, Exo 21:10 but to 1Co 7:5 their parting for a time, and coming together again: it is not an absolute command of God that they should separate for a time, on account of fasting and prayer, but if they thought fit to do so by agreement, they might; nor was there any positive precept for their coming together again directly, after such service was over. The apostle said this,

not of commandment; but, consulting their good, gives this advice, lest Satan should be busy with them, and draw them into sin; but if they had the gift of continence, they might continue apart longer; there was no precise time fixed by God, nor did the apostle pretend to fix any: or it may refer to what follows after, that he would have all men be as he was; though he laid no injunction, but left them to their liberty; unless it can be thought to regard marriage in general, and to be said in opposition to a Jewish notion, which makes marriage מצוה, a "command";

"a man, they say f, is bound to this command at seventeen years of age, and if he passes twenty and does not marry, he transgresses, and makes void an affirmative precept;''

but the apostle puts it as a matter of choice, and not of obligation.

Gill: 1Co 7:7 - -- For I would that all men were even as I myself,.... The apostle speaks not of his state and condition, as married or unmarried, for it is not certain ...

For I would that all men were even as I myself,.... The apostle speaks not of his state and condition, as married or unmarried, for it is not certain which he was; some think he had a wife, others not: it looks, however, as if he had not at this time, as appears from 1Co 7:8 but be it which it will, it can hardly be thought he should wish all men to be in either state, either all married, or all unmarried; but he speaks of the gift of continency, which he had, as the following words show; and this he desires for all men, that they might not be in any danger from Satan's temptations, and that they might be more fit for and intent upon the service of Christ. The Syriac version adds, בדכיותא in "purity", or "chastity"; which may be preserved in a marriage state, as well as in single life:

but every man hath his proper gift of God, one after this manner, and another after that: all the gifts of nature and grace which men have, they have of God, and not of themselves; and every man has a gift proper to himself; no one man has all gifts, but some one, and some another; and with respect to the case in hand, one man has the gift of continency, another the gift of marriage; all cannot contain themselves, only to whom it is given: and all are not disposed to marriage; some are inclined to a single life, and some to a marriage state; and of those that are married, some can abstain from the use of the marriage bed longer than others, without being in danger of being tempted by Satan for their incontinency; and such a disposition is desirable.

Gill: 1Co 7:8 - -- I say therefore to the unmarried and widows,.... Not by way of command, but advice: by the "unmarried" he means, either such men who never were in a m...

I say therefore to the unmarried and widows,.... Not by way of command, but advice: by the "unmarried" he means, either such men who never were in a married state, or else such who had been married, but their wives were dead; which latter sense seems more agreeable, since they are joined with "widows", who had lost their husbands:

it is good for them if they abide; unmarried, and do not change their condition any more; not that it was sinful to marry again, for he allows of it in the next verse, in case they have not the gift of continence; and therefore "good" here, is not opposed to evil, only signifies that it would be better for them, more expedient and profitable for them; they would be more free from the cares of life, have less trouble, and be more at leisure to serve the Lord; and which he knew by experience, and therefore, proposes himself as an example:

even as I; that is, as he was then; for at that time it seems certain that he had no wife; though whether he had had one, and she was now dead, or whether he had never been married, may be matter of dispute; the former seems most agreeable, since he proposes himself as an example to widowers and widows; and having known what a married and single state both were, was better able to give his judgment of both, and proper advice to such persons which must come with more force and strength, and a better grace, from such an one.

Gill: 1Co 7:9 - -- But if they cannot contain, &c. Or "if they do not contain", as the words may be rendered, and as almost all versions do render them; if they have not...

But if they cannot contain, &c. Or "if they do not contain", as the words may be rendered, and as almost all versions do render them; if they have not the gift of continency; if they are not willing, and do not think fit to contain, for none are to be compelled; if either therefore they want a will or power to contain, let them marry; it is not only lawful for them to marry, but it is right and best for them; hence it appears that second marriages are lawful, which were condemned by some of the ancients: for it is better to marry than to burn; or be burnt; not with material fire, as Judah ordered Tamar to be brought forth and burnt with, for whoredom; nor with hell fire, the just demerit of uncleanness; but with the fire of lust itself; and so the Syriac version reads it, "it is better to marry than to be burnt" ברגתא, "with lust"; when persons not only find in them some lustful motions and desires, and a glowing heat of concupiscence; but are as it were all on fire with the lusts of the flesh, and in great danger of being drawn into the commission of fornication, adultery, or other pollutions, and even unnatural lusts; it is much better to enter into a marriage state, though it may have its cares, inconveniences, and difficulties, than to be under temptations and inclinations to such defilements: so the Jews often express the lust of concupiscence by fire; they tell g us a

"story of R. Amram, that he redeemed all the captives, men and women; and the women and the virgins dwelt in a chamber in his house alone; one time, Satan kindled in him, אש התאוה, "the fire of lust", and he set a ladder to go up to them, and when he came upon the steps of the ladder, he began to cry with a loud voice, נורא בי עמרם נורא בי עמרם, "fire in the house of Amram, fire in the house of Amram": and the men came to quench the fire, and found nothing burning; for it was only his intention to cause to cease from him the fire of lust; and his thought ceased and his mind grew cool; and they asked him, why he mocked them? he replied, for this is a greater "fire" than all the fires in the world, for it is the fire of hell:''

This story is also told in the Talmud h, with some little variation: so we read of one that is אתלהיט ביצר רע, "inflamed" i, or all on fire "with the corruption of nature", who does not direct his heart to God: and such a man that finds his corruptions prevail over him, he ought to marry, they say k, as a proper remedy against it:

"he whose mind is intent upon the law continually, and learns it as Ben Azzai, and cleaves to it all his days, and does not marry a wife, there is no iniquity in his hands, and that because his corruption does not prevail over him; but if his corruption prevails over him, חייב לישא אשה, "he ought to marry a wife":''

and that for the very reason the apostle here gives. The Ethiopic version reads, "it is better to marry than to commit fornication"; that and adultery both are expressed by fire and burning, with the Jews, as they prove from Hos 7:4 l.

Gill: 1Co 7:10 - -- And unto the married I command,.... To the unmarried and widows he spoke by permission, or only gave advice and counsel to remain unmarried, provided ...

And unto the married I command,.... To the unmarried and widows he spoke by permission, or only gave advice and counsel to remain unmarried, provided they could contain; but if not, it was advisable to marry; but to persons already in a married state, what he has to say to them is by commandment, enjoining what they are under obligation to observe, not being at liberty to do as they will:

yet not I, but the Lord; not as if he took upon him the dominion over them, to make laws for them, and, in an imperious authoritative way, oblige them to obedience to them; no; what he was about to deliver, was not a law of his own enacting and obtruding, but what their Lord, their Creator, head, husband, and Redeemer, had ordered and enjoined; and this grave solemn way of speaking he makes use of, to excite their attention, command awe and reverence, make the greater impression upon their minds, and show the obligation they were under to regard what was said:

let not the wife depart from her husband; for the same law that obliges a man to cleave to his wife, obliges the wife to cleave to her husband, Gen 2:24 and those words of Christ, "what God hath joined together, let no man put asunder", Mat 19:6 regard the one as well as the other; and the rules he has given, forbidding divorces only in case of adultery, Mat 5:32 are as binding upon the wife as upon the husband. The wife therefore should not depart from her husband upon every slight occasion; not on account of any quarrel, or disagreement that may arise between them; or for every instance of moroseness and inhumanity; or because of diseases and infirmities; nor even on the score of difference in religion which, by what follows, seems to be greatly the case in view. The apostle observes this, in opposition to some rules and customs which obtained among Jews and Gentiles, divorcing and separating from one another upon various accounts; not only husbands put away their wives, but wives also left their husbands: for women to put away, or leave their husbands, were not in former times allowed of among the Jews, but from other nations crept in among them; indeed if a man married one under age, and she did not like him for her husband, she might refuse him, and go away without a bill of divorce; the manner of refusal was, by saying before two witnesses, I do not like such an one for my husband, or I do not like the espousals, with which my mother or my brother espoused me, or in such like words; and sometimes a written form of refusal was given m; but otherwise where marriage was consummated, such a departure of the wife was not allowed. Salome, the sister of Herod, is thought to be the first that introduced it, who sent a bill of divorce to Costobarus n her husband; and in this she was followed by Herodias, the daughter of Aristobulus, who left her husband, and married Herod Antipas o; and it seems certain, that this practice prevailed in Christ's time, since not only such a case is supposed, Mar 10:12 but a very flagrant instance is given in the woman of Samaria, Joh 4:18 who had had five husbands, not in a lawful regular manner, one after another upon their respective deaths, but she had married them, and put them away one after another: and as for the Gentiles, the account the Jews p give of them is, that though they had

"no divorces in form, they put away one another; R. Jochanan says, אשתו מגרשתו, "a man's wife might put him away", and give him the dowry:''

though, according to other accounts, they had divorces in form, which, when a man put away a woman, were called γραμματα αποπομπης, "letters of dismission"; and when a woman left her husband, απολειψεως γραμματα, "letters of dereliction", such as Hipparchia the wife of Alcibiades gave to him q; and Justin Martyr r gives us an instance of a Christian woman, who gave her husband what the Roman senate called a divorce.

Gill: 1Co 7:11 - -- But and if she depart,.... This is said, not as allowing of such a departure, which only in case of fornication is lawful; but supposing it a fact, th...

But and if she depart,.... This is said, not as allowing of such a departure, which only in case of fornication is lawful; but supposing it a fact, that a woman cannot be prevailed upon to stay with her husband, but actually forsakes him upon some difference arising between them,

let her remain unmarried: she ought not to marry another man; her departure does not make the marriage void; nor is it to be made void by any difference between them, either on religious or civil accounts, only in case of adultery; and therefore, if upon such separation she marries, she is guilty of adultery:

or be reconciled to her husband; which is rather to be chosen, than to remain separate, though unmarried; if she has given the offence, and is the cause of the separation, she ought to acknowledge it, and ask forgiveness of her husband, and return to him and live in peace with him; and if the fault is on his side, she ought to make use of all proper methods to convince him of it, bring him into good temper, forgive any injury done her, and live peaceably and comfortably together:

and let not the husband put away his wife; as the Jews were wont to do, upon every trifling occasion; See Gill on Mat 5:31, Mat 5:32

Gill: 1Co 7:12 - -- But to the rest speak I, not the Lord,.... He had spoken before to married persons in general, and had delivered not his own sentiments barely, but th...

But to the rest speak I, not the Lord,.... He had spoken before to married persons in general, and had delivered not his own sentiments barely, but the commandment of the Lord, that such should never separate from, or put away each other; in which he has respect to such as were upon equal foot in matters of religion, who were both of them believers in Christ; but now he speaks to the rest, to such as were unequally yoked, the one a believer, the other an unbeliever; and what he delivers on this head, concerning their living together, there being no express determination of this matter by the Lord himself, he under divine inspiration gives his sense of it; as that such marriages were valid, and that such persons ought to live together, and not separate on account of difference in religion: or the sense is, that as "to the rest" of the things they had wrote to him about, besides what he had given answer to already, he should speak to under divine illumination; though he had not an express law of Christ to point unto them, as the rule of their conduct: and particularly, whereas they had desired his judgment and advice upon this head, whether one who before conversion had married an unbeliever, ought to live with such an one, or whether it would not be advisable to leave, or put such away, to it he answers,

if any brother hath a wife that believeth not; that is, if any man who is now a brother, one called by the grace of God, and is in church fellowship, has a wife to whom he was married whilst in a state of unregeneracy and infidelity; who is as she was when he married her, entirely destitute of faith in Christ; not one that is weak in the faith, or only makes an outward profession, but that has no faith at all in Christ, nor in his Gospel, not so much as an historical one; who disbelieves, denies, and rejects, the truths of the Gospel:

and she be pleased to dwell with him; loves her husband, chooses to continue with him, notwithstanding their different sentiments of religion:

let him not put her away; infidelity is no reason for a divorce. The Gospel revelation does not dissolve the natural obligations men and women are in to one another. The Jews had a law prohibiting marriages with Heathens and idolaters; and such marriages were dissolved, and such wives put away, Exo 34:16 but this was a law peculiar to that people, and was not obligatory on other nations, and especially has no place under the Gospel dispensation.

Gill: 1Co 7:13 - -- And the woman which hath an husband that believeth,.... The apostle puts the case both ways, there being the same reason for one as for another; that ...

And the woman which hath an husband that believeth,.... The apostle puts the case both ways, there being the same reason for one as for another; that if she that was a sister, who was partaker of the grace of God, and a member of the church, had a husband to whom she was married before her conversion; who was an unbeliever, had no faith in Christ, nor any notion of the Gospel, but an infidel to both:

and if he be pleased to dwell with her; loves her, and is willing to continue with her; neither puts her away from him, nor departs from her on account of her Christianity:

let her not leave him; but continue, and cohabit with him as man and wife; this is the advice the apostle gives, as agreeably to the light of nature and reason; as becoming the Gospel of Christ, and as what might serve to recommend it, and spread the knowledge of it.

Gill: 1Co 7:14 - -- For the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife,.... That is, "by the believing wife"; as the Vulgate Latin and Syriac versions read, and so it ...

For the unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife,.... That is, "by the believing wife"; as the Vulgate Latin and Syriac versions read, and so it is read in some copies; and likewise in the next clause the same is read,

by the believing husband; this is a reason given by the apostle why they should live together. This cannot be understood of internal sanctification, which is never the case; an unbeliever cannot be sanctified by a believer in this sense, for such a sanctification is only by the Spirit of God; nor external sanctification, or an outward reformation, which though the unbelieving yoke fellow may sometimes be a means of, yet not always; and besides, the usefulness of one to another in such a relation, in a spiritual sense, urged as a reason for living together, in 1Co 7:16 nor merely of the holiness of marriage, as it is an institution of God, which is equally the same in unbelievers as believers, or between a believer and an unbeliever, as between two believers; but of the very act of marriage, which, in the language of the Jews, is expressed by being "sanctified"; instances almost without number might be given of the use of the word קדש, in this sense, out of the Misnic, Talmudic, and Rabbinic writings; take the following one instead of a thousand that might be produced s.

"The man מקדש, "sanctifies", or espouses a wife by himself, or by his messenger; the woman מתקדש, "is sanctified", or espoused by herself, or by her messenger. The man מקדש, "sanctifies", or espouses his daughter, when she is a young woman, by himself or by his messenger; if anyone says to a woman, התקדשי, "be thou sanctified", or espoused to me by this date (the fruit of the palm tree,) התקדשי, "be thou sanctified", or espoused to me by this (any other thing); if there is anyone of these things the value of a farthing, מקודשת, "she is sanctified", or espoused, and if not she is not מקודשת, "sanctified", or "espoused"; if he says, by this, and by this, and by this, if there is the value of a farthing in them all, מקודשת, "she is sanctified", or espoused; but if not, she is not מקודשת, "sanctified", or espoused; if she eats one after another, she is not מקודשת, "sanctified", or espoused, unless there is one of them the value of a farthing;''

in which short passage, the word which is used to "sanctify", or be "sanctified", in the Hebrew language, is used to espouse, or be espoused no less than "ten" times. So the Jews t interpret the word "sanctified", in Job 1:5 he espoused to them wives; in the Misna, the oral law of the Jews, there is a whole treatise of קידושין "sanctifications" u, or espousals; and in the Gemara or Talmud w is another, full of the disputes of the doctors on this subject. Maimonides has also written a treatise of women and wives x, out of which might be produced almost innumerable instances in proof of the observation; and such as can read, and have leisure to read the said tracts, may satisfy themselves to their heart's content. Let it be further observed; that the preposition εν, which is in most versions rendered "by", should be rendered "in" or "to" or "unto", as it is in the next verse, and in many other places; see Mat 17:12 Col 1:23 if it be rendered in the former way, "in", it denotes the near union which by marriage the man and woman are brought into; if in the latter, it designs the object to which the man or woman is espoused, and the true sense and even the right rendering of the passage is this: "for the unbelieving husband is espoused to the wife, and the unbelieving wife is espoused to the husband"; they are duly, rightly, and legally espoused to each other; and therefore ought not, notwithstanding their different sentiments of religion, to separate from one another; otherwise, if this is not the case, if they are not truly married to one another, this consequence must necessarily follow; that the children born in such a state of cohabitation, where the marriage is not valid, must be spurious, and not legitimate, and which is the sense of the following words:

else were your children unclean, but now are they holy; that is, if the marriage contracted between them in their state of infidelity was not valid, and, since the conversion of one of them, can never be thought to be good; then the children begotten and born, either when both were infidels, or since one of them was converted, must be unlawfully begotten, be base born, and not a genuine legitimate offspring; and departure upon such a foot would be declaring to all the world that their children were illegitimate; which would have been a sad case indeed, and contains in it another reason why they ought to keep together; whereas, as the apostle has put it, the children are holy in the same sense as their parents are; that as they are sanctified, or lawfully espoused together, so the children born of them were in a civil and legal sense holy, that is, legitimate; wherefore to support the validity of their marriage, and for the credit of their children, it was absolutely necessary they should abide with one another. The learned Dr. Lightfoot says, that the words "unclean" and "holy" denote not children unlawfully begotten, and lawfully begotten; but Heathenism and Christianism; and thinks the apostle alludes to the distinction often made by the Jews, of the children of proselytes being born in "holiness", or out of it, that is, either before they became proselytes or after; but it should be observed, that though the word "holiness" is used for Judaism, yet not for Christianity; and besides, the marriages of Heathens were not looked upon as marriages by the Jews, and particularly such mixed ones as of a Jew and Gentile, they were not to be reckoned marriages; for so they say y,

"he that espouses a Gentile woman, or a servant, אינן קידושין, "they are not espousals"; but lo, he is after the espousals as he was before the espousals; and so a Gentile, or a servant, that espouses a daughter of Israel, אין קידושיהן קידושין, "those espousals are no espousals";''

nor do they allow children begotten of such persons to be legitimate. This learned writer himself owns such a tradition, and which he cites z,

"that a son begotten in uncleanness is a son in all respects, and in general is reckoned as an Israelite, though he is a bastard, הבן מן הגויה אינו בנו, "but a son begotten on a Gentile woman is not his son";''

all which are just the reverse of what the apostle is here observing; and who, it must be remarked, is speaking of the same sort of holiness of children as of parents, which cannot be understood of Christianity, because one of the parents in each is supposed to be an Heathen. The sense I have given of this passage, is agreeable to the mind of several interpreters, ancient and modern, as Jerom, Ambrose, Erasmus, Camerarius, Musculus, &c. which last writer makes this ingenuous confession; formerly, says he, I have abused this place against the Anabaptists, thinking the meaning was, that the children were holy for the parents' faith; which though true, the present place makes nothing for the purpose: and I hope, that, upon reading this, everyone that has abused it to such a purpose will make the like acknowledgment; I am sure they ought.

Gill: 1Co 7:15 - -- But if the unbelieving depart,.... If the unbelieving party, man or woman, separate themselves from the believing party on account of religion, and in...

But if the unbelieving depart,.... If the unbelieving party, man or woman, separate themselves from the believing party on account of religion, and in hatred to it, and will not live with the believer unless Christ is denied, his Gospel abjured, and his ordinances and worship relinquished:

let him depart; he or she, though not without making use of all proper means to retain them; but if, after all, they will go, unless such things are complied with as are unreasonable and sinful, they are not to be held, but let go; and the deserted person may sit down contented, being not to be blamed, the fault entirely lying upon the deserter:

a brother or a sister is not under bondage in such cases. The Ethiopic version reads it, "to such an one"; one that is called by grace a church member, and so a brother or sister in Christ, is not to be subject to an unbeliever in matters of conscience, in things appertaining to the worship of God, and the service and glory of Christ; nor, being in such circumstances, that either Christ must be forsaken, or the unbeliever will depart, are they obliged to yield to such an one, but rather suffer a departure; nor are they bound to remain unmarried, but are free to marry another person, after all proper methods have been tried for a reconciliation, and that appears to be impracticable; desertion in such a case, and attended with such circumstances, is a breach of the marriage contract, and a dissolution of the bond, and the deserted person may lawfully marry again; otherwise a brother, or a sister in such a case, would be in subjection and bondage to such a person:

but God hath called us to peace; which ought to be sought after and maintained, so far as it can be consistent with truth, the glory of God, the honour of Christ, and interest of religion. The believing party being threatened with a desertion, ought as much as possible to seek for peace and reconciliation, and do all that can be to prevent a departure; for saints are called by the grace of God, to follow after and cultivate peace, not only with one another in their Christian communion as saints, but with all men, even their enemies, and especially with such as are so nearly allied; wherefore the departure should not be easily admitted, or a new marriage be suddenly entered into, reconciliation, if it can be obtained, being most eligible and becoming a Christian.

Gill: 1Co 7:16 - -- For what knowest thou, O wife,.... These words may be understood, as containing a reason either why the believing party should be easy at the departur...

For what knowest thou, O wife,.... These words may be understood, as containing a reason either why the believing party should be easy at the departure of the unbeliever, after all proper methods have been used in vain to retain him or her; taken from the uncertainty and improbability of being of any use to them, to bring them to the knowledge of Christ, and salvation by him; "for what knowest thou, O wife"; thou dost not know, thou canst not know, thou canst not be sure,

whether thou shall save thy husband? be the means of bringing of him under the means of grace, and so of his conversion and salvation; there is no likelihood of it, since he is such an implacable enemy to Christ, and so bitterly averse to the Gospel, and the ordinances of it; and therefore since he is determined to separate, even let him go: or else, as rendering a reason why the believer should seek for peace and reconciliation, and by all means, if possible, continue to dwell with the unbeliever; taken from hopes of being serviceable under a divine influence and blessing, for their spiritual and eternal good, the wife for the good of the husband; by whose conversation he may be won over, and prevailed upon to entertain a better opinion of the Christian religion; to take a liking to the Gospel, and to attend upon the ministry of the word, which may be made the power of God unto salvation to him:

or how knowest thou, O man, whether thou shall save thy wife; this may possibly be done, in the same manner as now suggested: persons in such a relation have often great influence upon one another, and are by divine Providence often great blessings to each other, in things spiritual as well as temporal. This puts me in mind of a case related by the Jewish doctors a:

"it happened to a holy man that he married a holy woman, and they had no children; say they, we are of no manner of profit to the blessed God; they stood up and divorced one another; he went and married a wicked woman, and she made him wicked; she went and married a wicked man, ועשתה אותו צדיק "and she made him righteous";''

or, to use the apostle's phrase, "saved him".

Gill: 1Co 7:17 - -- But as God hath distributed to every man,.... This text is so placed, and the words of it so expressed, as that it may have regard both to what goes b...

But as God hath distributed to every man,.... This text is so placed, and the words of it so expressed, as that it may have regard both to what goes before, and follows after; it may have respect to every man's proper gift, whether of continence, or of disposition to marriage, which every man has of God, 1Co 7:7, and accordingly ought to live in a single, or in a married state; or it may refer to the last verse,

what knowest thou, &c. and ει μη, which we render "but", be translated either "unless"; and then the sense is, thou knowest not, O man or woman, whether thou shalt save thy wife or husband, nor any other, unless God, who distributes his, grace to everyone as he pleases; or else it may be rendered if "not", and the sense be, if thou shouldst not save thy husband, or thou, man, shouldst not save thy wife; yet "as God hath distributed to every man" his own proper gift, both as to nature and grace; his proper sphere of usefulness, and the station in which he would have him be, and the place he would have him fill up, and the business he must do in life; so let him act, and

as the Lord hath called everyone; which is to be understood of that particular station of life, and those circumstances of it, in which men are providentially placed by God, or are found in when he calls them by his grace; as whether married or unmarried; whether joined to a believer or an unbeliever; whether circumcised or uncircumcised; whether bond or free; a servant or a master; and so may refer to what follows, as well as to what goes before:

so let him walk; contented with his station and kind of life, agreeably to the profession he makes of the Gospel, doing all the good he can to those he is concerned with:

and so ordain I in all churches; the decisions and determinations he had made, in the cases proposed to him about marriage, the rules and orders he had prescribed, what he had given out by way of precept or permission, by command or counsel, or what he was about to deliver, were no other than what he in common enjoined other churches; and therefore they ought not to think that they were used with more strictness and severity than others; and might be induced hereby to attend to what was advised or enjoined, since it was what was common to all the churches.

Gill: 1Co 7:18 - -- Is any man called being circumcised?.... That is, if any man that is a Jew, who has been circumcised in his infancy, is called by the grace of God, as...

Is any man called being circumcised?.... That is, if any man that is a Jew, who has been circumcised in his infancy, is called by the grace of God, as there were many in those days, and many of them in the church at Corinth:

let him not become uncircumcised; or "draw on" the foreskin; as some did in the times of Antiochus, for fear of him, and to curry favour with him, who, it is said, 1 Maccab. 1:15, "made themselves uncircumcised", and forsook the holy covenant; and so did Menelaus, and the sons of Tobias, as Josephus reports b; and there were many, in the days of Ben Cozba, who became uncircumcised by force, משוכין, they had their foreskins drawn on by the Gentiles against their wills, and when he came to reign were circumcised again c; for, according to the Jews, circumcision must be repeated, and not only four or five times d, but a hundred times, if a man becomes so often uncircumcised e They make mention of several particular persons who voluntarily became uncircumcised, or, to use their phrase, and which exactly answers to the word used by the apostle, מושך בערלתו "that drew over his foreskin"; as Jehoiachin f, Achan g, yea even the first Adam h; one guilty of this, they say, makes void the covenant i; it was accounted a very great sin, so great that he that committed it was reckoned k among them that shall have no part in the world to come, but shall be cut off and perish; physicians say, this may be done by the use of an instrument they call spaster, which has its name from the word used in the text. The apostle's sense is, that such as had been circumcised, and had now embraced the faith of Christ, had no reason to be uneasy, or take any methods to remove this mark from their flesh, because it was abolished by Christ, and now of no significance; since as it did them no good, it did them no hurt:

is any called in uncircumcision? let him not become circumcised?; that is, if a Gentile who was never circumcised is called by grace, let him not submit to circumcision, which is now abrogated, and is altogether unnecessary and unprofitable in the business of salvation; yea, hurtful and pernicious if done on that account, since it makes men debtors to do the whole law, and Christ of none effect unto them.

Gill: 1Co 7:19 - -- Circumcision is nothing,.... In the affair of justification before God, and acceptance with him; it cannot make any man righteous in the sight of God,...

Circumcision is nothing,.... In the affair of justification before God, and acceptance with him; it cannot make any man righteous in the sight of God, nor recommend him to the divine favour; it is no evidence of a man's calling, or of his having the truth or grace of God in him; nor is it of any avail in the business of salvation. It was something formerly; it was a command and an ordinance of God, to Abraham and his natural seed; it pointed at the corruption and pollution of nature; was typical of the effusion of the blood of Christ, for pardon, and cleansing, and of the internal circumcision of the heart; it was a sign and seal to Abraham, that he should be the father of many nations, and that the righteousness of faith should come upon the uncircumcised Gentiles; and was a distinguishing character of the people of the Jews, until the Messiah came: but now it is nothing, nor has it any of these uses, being with the rest of the ceremonies abolished by Christ; it gives no preference to the Jew above the Gentile; he that has this mark in his flesh, is not a whir the better for it, and he that is without it, is not at all the worse; and is a reason why both the one and the other should be easy, and not attempt any alteration in themselves with regard to this, or think the better or worse of themselves on account of it. This is said in direct opposition to the sentiments of the Jews, who extol circumcision to the skies. The apostle says it is nothing, and they say it is everything, and everything is nothing without it; they say, it is the hinge of their whole law l, and that it is equal to all the precepts in the law m; their extravagant commendations of it take in the following passage n;

"says R. Eliezar ben Azariah, uncircumcision is rejected, because by it the wicked are defiled, as it is said, "for all the Gentiles are uncircumcised"; says R. Ishmael, גדולה מילה, "great is circumcision"; for on account of it, thirteen covenants were made; says R. Jose, "great is circumcision", for it drives away the sabbath, the weighty (command in the law, that is, it is obliged to give way to it); R. Joshua ben Korcha says, "great is circumcision", for it was not suspended to Moses the righteous one full hour; R. Nehemiah says, "great is circumcision", for it drives away plagues; says Rabba, "great is circumcision", for notwithstanding all the commands which Abraham our father did, he was not called perfect until he was circumcised; as it is said, "walk before me, and be thou perfect"; says another, "great is circumcision", for had it not been for that, the holy blessed God would not have created his world; as it is said, "thus saith the Lord, if my covenant be not with day and night, and if I have not appointed the ordinances of heaven and earth",''

More of this kind might be produced, but enough of this.

And uncircumcision is nothing; it does not hinder any having an interest in, and partaking of the blessings of grace; nor their enjoyment of the Gospel and Gospel ordinances; nor their communion and fellowship with the churches of Christ, much less their everlasting salvation, as say o the Jews;

"the holy blessed God (say they) rejects the uncircumcised, and brings them down to hell; as it is said, Eze 32:18 "son of man, wail for the multitude of Egypt, and cast them down"; and so says Isaiah, Isa 5:14 "therefore hell hath enlarged herself and opened her mouth", לבלי חק; that is, to him that hath not the law of circumcision; as it is said, Psa 105:10 "and confirmed the same unto Jacob for a law, and to Israel for an everlasting covenant"; for no circumcised persons go down to hell:''

but the keeping of the commandments of God; that is something; not that the commands of God, and the observance of them, are of any avail to procure the pardon of sin, acceptance with God, justification in his sight, and eternal salvation; yet they are of moment, as they are the commands and ordinances of God; and ought to be kept in faith and fear, as they were delivered from a principle of love, and with a view to the glory of God; and though for keeping of them there is no reward of debt, yet in keeping of them there is a reward of grace; peace of mind is had, and the presence of God enjoyed; obedience to them, upon Gospel principles and motives, is a fruit of grace, an evidence of faith, and of the new creature; it is the ornament of a Christian profession, and is profitable to men.

Gill: 1Co 7:20 - -- Let every man abide in the same calling,.... Civil calling, station, and business of life, wherein he was called; that is, in which he was when he ...

Let every man abide in the same calling,.... Civil calling, station, and business of life,

wherein he was called; that is, in which he was when he was called by the grace of God; and is to be understood of such a calling, station, and business of life, as is lawful, honest, and of good report; otherwise he ought not to abide in it, but betake himself to another, as Matthew and Zacchaeus, when called by grace, left the scandalous employment of a publican: nor is it the apostle's sense, that a man that is in an honest way of living, may not change that for another that is equally so, as if a man was bound down to that sort of business he is in when first called; for no doubt it may be lawful, and there may be just reason for it in Providence, why a man should change his calling and station in life; though this ought not to be done rashly and unadvisedly, and without wise and good reasons; but the chief view of the apostle is to teach contentment in every condition, and station of life, and that persons should not be uneasy and restless in it, and seek for an alteration when there is no just occasion; and particularly he seems to have reference, either to the different state of married and unmarried persons, he had before been speaking of; see 1Co 7:27 or to the different circumstances of Jew and Gentile, as circumcised or uncircumcised, as in the foregoing verse; or to the different condition of bond and free, servant and master, in the following verse; and persuades them to remain easy and satisfied, for that the Christian religion does not necessarily require a change in a man's civil circumstances of life.

Gill: 1Co 7:21 - -- Art thou called being a servant?.... That is, called by grace whilst in the condition of a servant, care not for it; do not be troubled at it, and ...

Art thou called being a servant?.... That is, called by grace whilst in the condition of a servant,

care not for it; do not be troubled at it, and uneasy with it; be not anxiously solicitous to be otherwise; bear the yoke patiently, go through thy servitude cheerfully, and serve thy master faithfully; do not look upon it as any objection to thy calling, any contradiction to thy Christian liberty, or as unworthy of, and a reproach upon thy profession of Christ:

but if thou mayest be made free, use it rather. The Syriac renders the last clause, גבי לך דתפלוח, "choose for thyself to serve"; perfectly agreeable to the sense given of the words, by several great critics and excellent interpreters, who take the apostle's meaning to be, that should a Christian servant have an opportunity of making his escape from his master, or could he by any art, trick, and fraudulent method, obtain his liberty, it would be much more advisable to continue a servant, than to become free by any such means: yea, some seem to carry the sense so far, that even if servants could be made free in a lawful way, yet servitude was most eligible, both for their own and their master's good: for their own to keep them humble and exercise their patience; for their master's not only temporal, but spiritual good; since by their good behaviour they might be a means of recommending the Gospel to them, and of gaining them to Christ; but one should rather think the more obvious sense is, that when a Christian servant has his freedom offered him by his master, or he can come at it in a lawful and honourable way, this being preferable to servitude, he ought rather to make use of it; since he would be in a better situation, and more at leisure to serve Christ, and the interest of religion: however, certain it is, that the apostle's design is, to make men easy in every station of life, and to teach them how to behave therein; he would not have the freeman abuse his liberty, or be elated with it, nor the servant be uneasy under his servitude, nor be depressed by it, for the reasons following.

Gill: 1Co 7:22 - -- For he that is called in the Lord,.... Which is to be understood, not of any civil calling, or of calling to an office; or of the outward call by the ...

For he that is called in the Lord,.... Which is to be understood, not of any civil calling, or of calling to an office; or of the outward call by the ministry of the word only; but of an internal, special, powerful, evangelical, and saving call by the grace of God; which is of persons out of darkness into light, out of bondage into liberty, from their sinful companions to the company and society of Christ and his people, from off themselves and their own righteousness, to the grace and righteousness of Christ, and out of the world unto a kingdom and glory. And this may be said to be, in the Lord; either because it is by him, he is the efficient cause of it, his grace the moving cause, and his glory the end; or because it is in consequence of being in him, united to him, persons are first in the Lord, and then called by him; or because they are called into fellowship and communion with him; the whole is true, and make up the sense of the text; for he that is effectually called by grace, is called by the Lord, and by virtue of being chosen in him, and in union to him, and to partake of all the blessings of grace and glory that are with him. And such an one,

being a servant; in a natural and civil sense when called, in a spiritual sense

is the Lord's freeman; he is free from sin, not from the being, but from the servitude, guilt, and damning power of it: he is free from Satan, not from his temptations and insults, but from his dominion and captivity; he is ransomed from him, by the redemption of Christ, and is turned from his power in conversion; he has not that influence over him he before had; and he is so safe and secure from him, that he can never be destroyed by him, and in a short time Satan will be bruised under his feet: he is free from the law, the observance of the ceremonial law, and all its numerous burdensome rites; and from the moral law, not from obedience to it, as in the hands of Christ, but from the bondage, curse, and condemnation of it, as ministered by Moses: he is free of the company of saints, of the church of God below, and of heaven, the city God has built and prepared for his; he is free to the use of all things indifferent, provided it is done in faith, the peace of weak brethren secured, and the glory of God preserved; he is free to all the privileges and immunities of the house of God, and to the throne of grace, come when he will; and therefore though a servant, in another sense he is a very happy man; he is free indeed, and can never be disenfranchanised, or arrested, or cast into prison; the various privileges he is free unto and enjoys, show him to be a happy man; and the effects following on his freedom prove it, as peace with God, the presence of Christ, joy in the Holy Ghost, fellowship with saints, and a well grounded hope of glory; he is not only called to the liberty of grace, which he enjoys, but will be delivered into the glorious liberty of the children of God; and therefore has no reason to be uneasy with his civil servitude: on the other hand,

likewise he that is called being free; he that is called by the grace of God, with an holy and effectual calling, being a freeman, his own master, and it may be the master of others in a civil sense, he, in a spiritual one,

is Christ's servant: he is bought by Christ with his money, with the price of his blood; and therefore he has a right unto him, and a claim to his service; and he becomes a voluntary servant to him, through the power of his grace upon him; and though he serves his Lord Christ without mercenary views, freely, readily, and cheerfully, from a principle of love and gratitude, he shall not fail of a reward of grace; he shall be honoured of God, approved of men, and shall receive the reward of the inheritance: Christian liberty, and the service of Christ, are not at all inconsistent; nor should we entertain any other notions of liberty, but what are consistent with serving the Lord; whatever liberty contradicts, that is no true liberty; though it may have the face of it, it is no other than bondage.

Gill: 1Co 7:23 - -- Ye are bought with a price,.... Some read these words interrogatively, as 1Co 7:18, "are ye bought with a price?" and suppose them directed to such wh...

Ye are bought with a price,.... Some read these words interrogatively, as 1Co 7:18, "are ye bought with a price?" and suppose them directed to such who had bought out their time of servitude with a sum of money, and ought not to return to their former condition; but they are rather to be read affirmatively, and to be understood of all, whether freemen or servants, that are bought with the inestimable price of Christ's blood, as in 1Co 6:20 and contain in them a reason why such as are called by the grace of God, whilst in a state of civil servitude, are Christ's freemen, because they are redeemed by him from sin, Satan, the law, and from among men; and also why such as are called by the grace of God, being in a state of civil liberty, are Christ's servants, because he has purchased them with his blood, and therefore has a right unto them, both to their persons and service:

be not ye the servants of men: not that the apostle dissuades such as are redeemed by Christ, and are believers in him, from being the servants of men in a civil sense; for this would be to contradict himself, who here and elsewhere exhorts servants to continue in the service of their masters, and to perform it heartily and cheerfully, and with great sincerity and integrity; but his meaning is, that since they were redeemed from a vain conversation by the blood of Christ, they should not be servants to the lusts of men, nor obey them in things sinful and wicked, which were contrary to law and Gospel, and which were made unlawful by the word of God, and were a breach of the command of their Lord and master Christ; nor should they in matters of religion and the worship of God submit to the authority of any set of men whatever, or be subject to the doctrines and commandments of men; whether these relate to Jewish ceremonies, or Gentile superstitions, or be a mixture of both: they were to call no man master upon earth; nor suffer any to lord it over them, as the false teachers very much did in this church; but to acknowledge Christ, who had bought them to be their only Lord and master. The allusion seems to he to a tradition of the Jews, that the Israelites being redeemed out of Egypt were the servants of God, and not of men p;

"R. Jochanan ben Zaccai was explaining this Scripture, Exo 21:6 how different the ear is from all the members of the body; says the holy blessed God, the ear that heard my voice on Mount Sinai, at the time I said, the children of Israel are my servants, ולא עבדים לעבדים, and "not servants to servants"; and this goes and gets itself a master, let it be bored: R. Simeon ben Ribbi was explaining the same Scripture, how different the door and the door post were from all the parts of the house; says the holy blessed God, the door and the door post, which were witnesses in Egypt, at the time that I passed by the threshold, and by the two door posts, and I said, the children of Israel are my servants, and not servants to servants, and I brought them out of bondage to liberty; and this goes and gets itself a master, let it be bored before them.''

Gill: 1Co 7:24 - -- Brethren, let every man wherein he is called, The apostle repeats the advice given in 1Co 7:20 and prefaces it with that tender and affectionate appel...

Brethren, let every man wherein he is called, The apostle repeats the advice given in 1Co 7:20 and prefaces it with that tender and affectionate appellation, "brethren", the more to engage them to attend to it; showing also that whatever difference there was in their civil state and condition, there was none in their religious one; they were all brethren, one of another, they were his brethren, yea, even the brethren of Christ:

therein abide with God; that is, abide in his civil calling and station of life, be it what it will, as knowing he is in that state it is the will of God he should be in; and as in the sight of God, who knows all men, and what is best for them, and who sees and observes all their actions and conduct of life; and with whom there is no respect of persons, of bond or free, of masters or servants; they are admitted equally to enjoy the same favours and privileges in the house of God; have the same access to the throne of grace, and enjoy the same communion with God; and therefore should be content in their present situation, discharging the several duties of their station aright, and exercise a good conscience both towards God and man.

Gill: 1Co 7:25 - -- Now concerning virgins,.... Whether they should continue in the same state or not, whether they should marry or not, was one of the cases put to the a...

Now concerning virgins,.... Whether they should continue in the same state or not, whether they should marry or not, was one of the cases put to the apostle, and which the Corinthians wrote to him about, and to which he returns this answer:

I have no commandment of the Lord: neither in the Old Testament, in the law of Moses, or writings of the prophets; nothing is therein enjoined concerning celibacy, or commanding persons to live a single life; but on the contrary there are many things directing and exciting to a marriage state; nor had the apostle any command from the Lord Jesus Christ, under the Gospel dispensation, obliging to virginity; nor any special orders, or peculiar revelation from the Spirit of God, fixing and settling this point:

yet I give my judgment, what will be most advisable, convenient, and prudent to be done, considering persons, times, and circumstances. The apostle does not make use of his power and authority, as such, to make decrees, and prescribe rules, binding on the consciences of men; only humbly and modestly gives his opinion, which if thought well of, might be followed by them: and the more to engage them to take his advice, he adds,

as one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord to be faithful; the meaning of which is, not that he, through the goodness and mercy of the Lord, had with great integrity preserved his virginity, and so proposes himself, as an instance and example of retaining it; for it is not certain, that though the apostle was now single, that he had never been married; it seems rather that he had, and therefore this cannot be his sense; nor does he refer to his faithfulness, to the Gospel committed to his trust, and the faithful discharge of his whole ministerial service, and which was owing to divine grace and mercy; but to that plainness, honesty, and integrity, which appeared in the whole course and conduct of his life, and in all his conversation with men; and particularly in giving advice about any matter, or declaring his sentiments on any subject: and when a man is free and faithful, and openly and honestly tells his mind, it greatly recommends him, and commands attention and regard to what he says; and faithfulness, it may be observed, considered in this sense, is not of nature, but of grace; it is obtained not by a man's own power and strength, but by the grace and mercy of God; to which it is here ascribed.

Gill: 1Co 7:26 - -- I suppose, therefore, that this is good,.... The opinion of the apostle, the sentiment of his mind, his judgment in this case were, that it was better...

I suppose, therefore, that this is good,.... The opinion of the apostle, the sentiment of his mind, his judgment in this case were, that it was better, more advisable and eligible, for persons that were single to continue so; his reason for it follows,

for the present necessity; by which is meant not the shortness of life, and the necessity of dying, when husband and wife must part, upon which trouble ensues; nor the various sorrows, cares, encumbrances, trials, and exercises that attend a conjugal state, as bearing and bringing forth, and bringing up children, provision for the family, &c. which are common to all, and at all times more or less; but the present time of persecution, under which the churches of Christ were; agreeably the Syriac version reads it, מטל אעקא דזבנא, "because of the necessity of the time", or season: using the very Greek word in text; as the Targumists q also have frequently adopted it into their language, and use the phrase שעת אעקי, "an hour, or time of necessity", for a time of great affliction and distress, just as the apostle does here; because this was the present case of the Christians, he thought it most prudent for such as were single to remain so; since as they were often obliged to move from place to place, to fly from one city to another, this would be very incommodious for married persons, who might have young children to take care of, and provide for; see Mat 24:19 upon a like account, the Jewish doctors advise to the same the apostle here does r;

"from the day that the empire is extended, which decrees hard decrees upon us, and causes the law and the commandments to cease from us, and does not suffer us to circumcise children; it is right that we agree among ourselves, שלא לישא אשה, not to marry, and beget children:''

I say it is good for a man so to be; to remain unmarried, to live a single life, to be a virgin; for the word "virgin", as here used, relates to men as well as maidens, and denotes the single state of either. The apostle does not add, "even as I"; as he does in 1Co 7:8 which seems to confirm the conjecture already made, that he was not a bachelor, but a widower; otherwise he would doubtless have enforced this advice by his own example, as before.

Gill: 1Co 7:27 - -- Art thou bound unto a wife?.... Or to a woman; either by promise, or by espousal, or by consummate marriage; either of which is a tic, or obligation, ...

Art thou bound unto a wife?.... Or to a woman; either by promise, or by espousal, or by consummate marriage; either of which is a tic, or obligation, a bond, and especially the latter; marriage is such a bond as cannot be dissolved, but by the death of one of the parties; see Rom 7:2 unless in case of adultery, or of wilful desertion: and it is a bond which mutually obliges; as the husband is bound by the law of marriage to live chastely and lovingly with his wife, and to take care of her, and provide for her; so the wife is bound by the same law to live in like manner with her husband, and to submit unto him, and obey him:

seek not to be loosed; do not depart from her, nor seek to be divorced, nor even desire to be loosed by death:

art thou loosed from a wife? being either never married, or else if having been married the wife is dead, or legally divorced for a just cause:

seek not a wife, or woman; make no inquiry after one; be content to live without one; enter not into a marriage state, nor take any step towards it; it is best to continue loosed, for the reason above given, that is, provided the person has the gift of continence, otherwise not; see 1Co 7:5.

Gill: 1Co 7:28 - -- But and if thou marry, thou sinnest not,.... If a man that has never been married, or one that has, if legally loosed from his wife, thinks fit to mar...

But and if thou marry, thou sinnest not,.... If a man that has never been married, or one that has, if legally loosed from his wife, thinks fit to marry, he commits no sin, he breaks no law of God, far from it; marriage is honourable in all. The apostle would be understood, that in the advice he before gives, he is not dissuading from marriage, as a thing sinful and criminal; only that it was more advisable to such as could to abstain from it, under the present circumstances of things; and what he says of a man holds equally true of a virgin:

and if a virgin marry, she hath not sinned; the one may as lawfully marry as another; there is no law forbidding virgins to marry, any more than young men; and if they think fit to enter into such a state, they break no law of God, and consequently sin not:

nevertheless such shall have trouble in the flesh; that is, such young men and virgins, who choose to marry, and who generally promise themselves a great deal of pleasure, shall meet with a great deal of trouble; and that even where they expected the most satisfaction and delight, "in the flesh"; the body, the outward man, and external circumstances of life. This "trouble" is the same with the present necessity before mentioned, the persecutions and tribulations the saints should suffer in the flesh, for the sake of Christ and his Gospel; not that married persons should be the only ones that should have trouble in this way, but that such persons would be less able to bear it, or to escape from it. Moreover, this may be extended to all the sorrows, troubles, and distresses which attend a married state:

but I spare you; the sense of which is, either that the apostle, out of his great tenderness to such who were inclined to marry, and could not contain, just gave this hint, that such should have trouble in the flesh; but did not dwell upon it or enter into particulars, lest they should be discouraged from it, and fall into temptation, sin, and a snare; or because of the great respect he had to the Corinthians, he gave the above advice to keep themselves single, that they might the better bear afflictions and persecutions, for the sake of their profession, and escape many troubles which others endure.

Gill: 1Co 7:29 - -- But this I say, brethren, the time is short,.... This is another reason, with which the apostle supports his advice to virgins, and unmarried persons,...

But this I say, brethren, the time is short,.... This is another reason, with which the apostle supports his advice to virgins, and unmarried persons, to remain so; since the time of life is so very short, and it is even but a little while to the end of the world, and second coming of Christ; and therefore seeing the marriage state is so full of care and trouble, and it affords still less time for the service of Christ and religion, he thought it most advisable for them to, continue in a single life, that they might be more at leisure to make use of that little time they had for their spiritual good and welfare, the edification of others, and the glory of Christ: unless it should be rather thought that the apostle is still enlarging upon the former argument, taken from the present time, being a time of distress and persecution; and so the phrase, "the time is short", or "contracted", and full of anguish and affliction, is the same with the present necessity, and trouble in the flesh; and since this was the case, he suggests again, that an unmarried state was most preferable:

it remaineth that both they that have wives, be as though they had none: and as for the rest, they that were married, his advice to them was, that they should so behave as if they were not married; not that he would have them put away their wives, or fancy with themselves that they had none, or make no use of the marriage bed; but suggests a moderate use of it; he would not have them give up themselves to lasciviousness and carnal lusts and pleasures, even with their own wives, and spend their time altogether in their company and embraces: but since the time of life was short, and that full of troubles, they should spend it in the service and worship of God, private and public, as much as possible; and not in the indulging and satisfying of the flesh.

Gill: 1Co 7:30 - -- And they that weep, as though they wept not,.... They that weep for troubles and crosses, things adverse and afflicting in a marriage state, for the l...

And they that weep, as though they wept not,.... They that weep for troubles and crosses, things adverse and afflicting in a marriage state, for the loss of wives or children, should express their sorrow in such a manner and degree, as if they wept not; not that the apostle here introduces and establishes a stoical apathy, and would have persons show no manner of concern for these things; but he directs to a moderate use of sorrow, to such a degree as not to hinder and divert from the exercises of piety and religion:

and they that rejoice, as though they rejoiced not; such who are blessed with great prosperity, and with whom everything goes well; they have married wives, and have children, and thrive in the world; let them rejoice on the account of these things, in such a still, silent way, as if they rejoiced not, their hearts not being set upon their outward felicity, nor elated with it; but rejoicing rather that their names were written in heaven, that they had an interest in Christ and his grace, and a right and title to the glories of another world, and at the same time be thankful to God for what they enjoy in this:

and they that buy as though they possessed not; meaning, not any sort of buyers, everyone is a buyer in some sense; but such as purchase estates, buy houses and lands, and become proprietors of large tracts. These the apostle would not have hold their substance for themselves, but hold it as if they did not hold it, parting with it for the use of others; and as persons that are only stewards, and not properly owners, and in a little time must quit it all, and be accountable for their use and disposition of it.

Gill: 1Co 7:31 - -- And they that use this world, as not abusing it,.... Such as have a large affluence of the things of this world, should use them in a moderate and tem...

And they that use this world, as not abusing it,.... Such as have a large affluence of the things of this world, should use them in a moderate and temperate manner; should not squander them away extravagantly, or spend them on their lusts, and use them intemperately, which is to abuse them:

for the fashion of this world passeth away; not the nature, matter, and substance, but the figure and form of it; for after this world is burnt up, a new one, as to form and fashion, will arise, in much more beauty and glory; all that looks glorious and beautiful in the present world, as riches, honour, &c. are all mere show and appearance, having nothing solid and substantial in them; and are all fluid and transitory, are passing away; there is nothing firm and permanent; in a little time, all will be at an end, the world itself, as to its present form, and all that is in it; when there will be no more marrying, nor giving in marriage, no more buying and selling, no more of the present changes and vicissitudes of prosperity and adversity, of joy and sorrow; these scenes will be all removed, and quite a new face of things appear: wherefore what the apostle exhorts unto, with respect to present conduct and behaviour, must be right and good.

Gill: 1Co 7:32 - -- But I would have you without carefulness,.... This is another reason, by which the apostle confirms the advice he gives to virgins to remain such, bec...

But I would have you without carefulness,.... This is another reason, by which the apostle confirms the advice he gives to virgins to remain such, because the married state is full of cares, whereas the single life is no more free from them; and therefore he wishes them to continue in such a state, that they might be without anxious and distracting cares of temporal things, things relating to the good decorum and sustenance of a family, and so be more free and at leisure for the service of God; which he illustrates, by showing the different cares that married and unmarried persons are involved in:

he that is unmarried, careth for the things that belong to the Lord; such as hearing the word, reading it, meditating upon it, praying to God and attending upon all ordinances, taking every opportunity to glorify God, and do good to others; but this is not to be understood as matter of fact, that unmarried persons are so studiously concerned for these things, or that this is the case of all of them; there are many unmarried persons think nothing about them; and are not at all concerned with them; but the meaning is, that such persons are more at leisure, and can more conveniently attend to these things, and ought so to do; and they that have the grace of God will be more or less solicitous to observe them:

how he may please the Lord; for when these things are attended to in faith and fear, from a principle of love, and with a view to the glory of God, the good of their own souls and others, they are well pleasing to the Lord; and though they are not meritorious of eternal life, yet they are acceptable to God through Jesus Christ, and will be taken notice of with approbation, and followed with a reward of grace another day.

Gill: 1Co 7:33 - -- But he that is married careth for the things that are of the world,.... Attending diligently to the business and calling of life, he is engaged in, th...

But he that is married careth for the things that are of the world,.... Attending diligently to the business and calling of life, he is engaged in, that he may provide food and clothing, and other necessaries for the support and sustenance of his family:

how he may please his wife: and make her and his children easy and comfortable. This also is not to be understood of every individual person in a married state as matter of fact; for, on the one hand, there are some who take no care to please their wives and provide for their families, and are worse than infidels; and, on the other hand, there are others who take a proper care to make a suitable provision for their wives and children, to the satisfaction of both; and yet this is not their only care, they also care for the things of the Lord, and concern themselves much for his honour and glory: but the sense is, that, generally speaking, persons in such a state are greatly involved in worldly cares, and have not that leisure, and those opportunities, that single persons have to attend religious exercises; wherefore the single state, on this account, is, in the apostle's opinion, the more preferable.

Gill: 1Co 7:34 - -- There is difference also between a wife and a virgin,.... The word μεμερισται, translated "there is difference", stands in some copies at th...

There is difference also between a wife and a virgin,.... The word μεμερισται, translated "there is difference", stands in some copies at the end of the last verse, and in the Vulgate Latin and Ethiopic versions, by which it is rendered, "and is divided"; referring to the married man, whose thoughts are distracted with the cares of the world, and his mind divided between the Lord and his wife, between the things that please the one, and those that please the other; so that he cannot attend upon the Lord without distraction, as the unmarried person may; see 1Co 7:35. But the more generally received reading is what we follow; in which words the apostle shows, that there is just the same difference between a married and an unmarried woman, as there is between a married and an unmarried man. There is no difference in their nature, nor sex, but in their state and condition, and in the cares which involve the one and the other.

The unmarried woman careth for the things of the Lord; not everyone that is unmarried, but one that has the grace of God, being in a single state; as such an one is more at leisure, and can more conveniently attend on the service of the Lord, so she ought, and generally speaking does: and her end in so doing is,

that she may be holy both in body and in spirit; not in body only, but in spirit also; for outward chastity, without internal holiness, will be of little avail: but as a close adherence to the Lord, and to his worship and service, may be a means of preserving from external pollutions of the body, so likewise of carrying on the internal work of grace upon the soul; not that it is to be thought that unmarried persons are the only ones that are holy in body and spirit; there are some that are so in neither; and there are many married persons that are chaste in their bodies, and possess their vessels in sanctification and honour, and are blessed with inward spiritual purity.

But she that is married careth for the things of the world, how she may please her husband; not by beautifying and adorning herself with broidered hair, or gold, or pearls, or costly array; though this is all that some care for; but with good works, taking care of her household and family affairs, bringing up her children in an orderly manner, honouring and obeying her husband, doing everything to oblige him, and to engage his love and affection to her, as becomes her; nor is this said of her by way of criticism, only that such is her state and situation in life, that she has not the opportunities and advantages the unmarried person has of serving the Lord; on which account the single life is represented as most advisable to abide in.

Gill: 1Co 7:35 - -- And this I speak for your own profit,.... The apostle suggests, that in giving the advice he did to unmarried persons to abide single, he had nothing ...

And this I speak for your own profit,.... The apostle suggests, that in giving the advice he did to unmarried persons to abide single, he had nothing else in view than their temporal and spiritual advantage; that they might be better able to meet and grapple with persecution for the sake of the Gospel; that they might be more free from the cares and encumbrances of life, and more at liberty to serve the Lord; whereby not only his glory, but their spiritual good, might be promoted; not that he thought that marriage was unlawful, or that the single life was a more honest, and a more chaste way of living, or that it was absolutely necessary, and an incumbent duty upon them to remain single, nor would he be so understood: all that he had said was by way of advice; he had very faithfully laid before them the advantages and disadvantages of both states, and now leaves them to their full liberty to do as they pleased to take his advice, or not:

not that I may cast a snare on you; as fowlers on birds: had he enjoined virginity as necessary, and insisted upon it, that it was absolutely their duty to live a single life; this would have been laying an obligation upon them, and an ensnaring and entangling of them: hereby some might have engaged in a single life, who had not the gift of continence, and so might have been drawn into the sin of fornication, or into unnatural lust, and such impurities as would be very scandalous unto, and highly reflect upon, the Gospel of Christ. But the apostle delivered himself on the subject with no such view, and in such a manner as is plain he meant not to ensnare any:

but for that which is comely, and that you may attend upon the Lord without distraction: all he aimed at, by advising them to a single life, was that they might more orderly and constantly, and without distraction of mind, through the cares of the world, wait upon the Lord, and serve him; which, in his opinion, was choosing the good part with Mary; whilst others, like Martha, were troubled, divided, and distracted with many things.

Gill: 1Co 7:36 - -- But if any man think,.... This some understand of a man that is engaged, or betrothed to a virgin, and protracts marriage, who may use his prudence in...

But if any man think,.... This some understand of a man that is engaged, or betrothed to a virgin, and protracts marriage, who may use his prudence in consummating it, if he pleases, for any thing the apostle has said to the contrary: but it is better to understand it of a parent, or one that has the care and guardianship of virgins; if such an one is of opinion,

that he behaveth himself uncomely towards his virgin: by exposing her to contempt and reproach, in retaining her at home, and not giving her in marriage when at proper age for such a state; it being reckoned reproachful to be at, or past the age of marriage, or to be in years, and not married; or by so doing lay her under temptation to do that which is uncomely, to commit fornication, which would be uncomely, both to him, and to her; and such a tendency has living in a single state, contrary to inclination. The apostle may have respect to a Jewish tradition founded upon the supposed sense of Lev 19:29 "do not prostitute thy daughter to cause her to be a whore" s.

"Says R. Eliezer, this is he who marries his daughter to an old man. Says R. Akiba, (who was contemporary with the apostle,) this is he who detains his daughter at home when she is marriageable.''

If she pass the flower of her age; that is, one that is arrived to years of maturity, is ripe for marriage, and is what the Jewish doctors call בגרת; who, according to them, was one of twelve years and a half old t, at which age virgins were judged fit to marry: hence that saying of theirs u.

"if thy daughter, בגרה, "is ripe", or come to the flower of her age, make thy servant free and give her to him.''

Moreover, according to their canons, such an one was no longer under her father's power; for so runs the canon w,

"hrgbv Nwyk "when she is at the flower of her age", she is no more under her father's power:''

her father cannot make void her vows, though a husband can x:

and need so require: that she be given in marriage to a man; if she has not the gift of continence; if she is in danger of falling into the sin of fornication, and the father or guardian are sensible of this:

let him do what he will, he sinneth not; he is under no obligation by what the apostle had said to detain her in a single life; he may give her in marriage if he pleases: he may

do what she will, as it may be rendered; comply with her inclination and desire in marrying her to some person; in doing which, neither he nor she will break any law of God, and so not sin therein:

let them marry; let parents marry their children when this is the case; let the young men and young women marry who are so disposed; there is no reason why they should not; there is nothing contrary to it in the word of God, nor in the advice of the apostle; nay, according to him, it was much better to marry than to burn, or to be exposed to any snare and temptation.

Gill: 1Co 7:37 - -- Nevertheless, he that standeth steadfast in his heart,.... The apostle returns to confirm his former advice, where it can be attended to with safety; ...

Nevertheless, he that standeth steadfast in his heart,.... The apostle returns to confirm his former advice, where it can be attended to with safety; and observes, that notwithstanding what he had allowed might lawfully be done, and was proper to be done; yet a man that had deliberated upon, and had well weighed the matter of virginity, the case of a single life, and was at a point about in, having no hesitation nor fluctuation of mind concerning it: and also "having no necessity"; of acting otherwise, either through the meanness of his circumstances, or rather through the weakness of his virgin, she not having the gift of continency:

but hath power over his own will; his daughter's will being the same with his, and she entirely consenting to live a single life; otherwise he would have no power of acting as he pleased in such a case:

and hath so decreed in his heart: it is a fixed point on mature deliberation, in which he himself is hearty and determined, and his child perfectly assents to it, so that on all hands it is an agreed matter:

that he will keep his virgin; at home with him, unmarried, and not give her to any man in marriage:

doth well: or that which is for both temporal and spiritual profit and advantage, as before observed. Some understand all this of a man's keeping his own virginity, and determining to continue unmarried.

Gill: 1Co 7:38 - -- So then he that giveth her in marriage doth well,.... Does that which is in its own nature good; that which is agreeable to the will of God, is of hi...

So then he that giveth her in marriage doth well,.... Does that which is in its own nature good; that which is agreeable to the will of God, is of his institution and appointment, and therefore must be good, and answer many good ends and purposes. Such an one that marries his daughter, he seeing a necessity for it, and a propriety in it, does a very good thing; secures her chastity, and his own credit; prevents fornication, and other evils that might follow; consults the good of mankind, and the honour of religion.

But he that giveth her not in marriage doth better; not a better action in itself, simply considered; but more profitable and advantageous under such and such circumstances, with such and such conditions and consequences; since hereby a single person is more fit to encounter with and endure persecutions, is freer from the cares of life, and more at liberty to wait upon the Lord, and give up himself to his service.

Gill: 1Co 7:39 - -- The wife is bound by the law as long as her husband liveth,.... That is, she is bound to her husband, by the law of marriage, during his life; nor can...

The wife is bound by the law as long as her husband liveth,.... That is, she is bound to her husband, by the law of marriage, during his life; nor can the bond of marriage between them be dissolved but by the death of one of them, except in the cases of adultery, and wilful desertion, see Rom 7:2.

But if her husband be dead; or "asleep", for so the word may be rendered; though it designs death: death is often expressed by sleeping in Scripture; for the dead will not always remain in such a state, but be raised from thence at the last day, just as persons are awaked out of sleep. The Alexandrian copy reads αποθανη, "dead"; and so seems the Ethiopic version to have read.

She is at liberty to marry whom she will: so that second marriages are lawful, though condemned by many of the ancients: the liberty of a widow is greater than that of a virgin, because a virgin is under the power, and at the dispose of her parents; but a widow is at her own dispose; and death having dissolved her former obligation, she is at entire liberty to marry, or not marry, and to marry whom she pleases, that is not forbidden by the laws of God:

only in the Lord; not that it is absolutely necessary that her husband should be in the Lord, a converted person, a believer in Christ; though such an one should be most desirable and eligible: but either that she should continue in the possession of her faith in Christ, and not relinquish it for the sake of an husband; or that she enter into this state in the fear of the Lord, calling upon him, and consulting him in such an important affair; and take care that whom she marries is not within the line prohibited by the Lord.

Gill: 1Co 7:40 - -- But she is happier if she so abide,.... That is, a widow, in an unmarried state; which is to be understood not of the happiness of another world, but ...

But she is happier if she so abide,.... That is, a widow, in an unmarried state; which is to be understood not of the happiness of another world, but of this: the apostle's meaning is, that she would be more free from cares, and less liable to trouble, would live with more peace and quietness, and be more at leisure to serve the Lord, second marriages oftentimes proving more disagreeable than the first; but in this the apostle only gives his opinion, enjoins nothing by way of command, or in an authoritative manner: and therefore adds,

after my judgment: according to his sense of things, and agreeably to the advice he had before given to unmarried persons, whether virgins or widows, such a person was likely to have most peace, and least trouble, remaining a widow, than if married, and so consequently more happy: and in order to engage such to regard his counsel, he further says,

and I think also that I have the Spirit of God; that though he had no express command, nor did he pretend to any, nor did he lay any injunction on any, but left them to their liberty; yet he could not but think, nay, he was assured, though he thus modestly expresses himself, that he was directed to give this advice by the Spirit of God.

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Notes / Footnotes

NET Notes: 1Co 7:9 Grk “than to burn,” a figure of speech referring to unfulfilled sexual passion.

NET Notes: 1Co 7:10 Not I, but the Lord. Here and in v. 12 Paul distinguishes between his own apostolic instruction and Jesus’ teaching during his earthly ministry....

NET Notes: 1Co 7:12 I, not the Lord. Here and in v. 10 Paul distinguishes between his own apostolic instruction and Jesus’ teaching during his earthly ministry. In ...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:14 Grk “the brother.” Later witnesses (א2 D2 Ï) have ἀνδρί (andri, “husband”) here, apparent...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:15 Interpreters differ over the implication of the statement the brother or sister is not bound. One view is that the believer is “not bound to con...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:16 Grk “will save your wife?” The meaning is obviously that the husband would be the human agent in leading his wife to salvation.

NET Notes: 1Co 7:17 Or “only”; Grk “if not.”

NET Notes: 1Co 7:18 Grk “Let him not pull over the foreskin,” that is, attempt to reverse the appearance of circumcision by a surgical procedure. This was som...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:20 Grk “in the calling.” “Calling” in Paul is God’s work of drawing people to faith in Christ. As in 1:26, calling here sta...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:21 Traditionally, “servant” (KJV), though almost all modern translations render the word as “slave” here.

NET Notes: 1Co 7:24 Grk “brothers.” See note on the phrase “brothers and sisters” in 1:10.

NET Notes: 1Co 7:25 Grk “virgins.” There are three main views as to which group of people is referred to by the word παρθένο...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:27 Grk “should not seek a wife.”

NET Notes: 1Co 7:28 Grk “I am trying to spare you.” Direct objects were frequently omitted in Greek when clear from the context. “Such problems” h...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:29 Grk “brothers.” See note on the phrase “brothers and sisters” in 1:10.

NET Notes: 1Co 7:34 Grk “The unmarried woman and the virgin.” The identity of the “virgin” here is a matter of interpretation (see note on “...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:36 Or referring to an engaged man: “if he is past the critical point,” “if his passions are too strong.” The word literally means...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:38 1 Cor 7:36-38. There are two common approaches to understanding the situation addressed in these verses. One view involves a father or male guardian d...

NET Notes: 1Co 7:39 The verb κοιμάω (koimaw) literally means “sleep,” but it is often used in the Bible as a euphemism for the d...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:6 ( 5 ) But I speak this by permission, [and] not of commandment. ( 5 ) Fifthly he teaches that marriage is not necessary for all men, but for those wh...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:7 For I ( e ) would that all men were even as I myself. But every man hath his proper gift of God, one after this manner, and another after that. ( e )...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:8 ( 6 ) I say therefore to the ( f ) unmarried and widows, It is good for them if they abide even as I. ( 6 ) Sixthly, he gives the very same admonitio...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:9 But if they cannot contain, let them marry: for it is better to marry than to ( g ) burn. ( g ) So to burn with lust, that either the will yields to ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:10 ( 7 ) And unto the married I command, [yet] not I, but the Lord, Let not the wife depart from [her] husband: ( 7 ) Seventhly, he forbids contentions ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:12 ( 8 ) But to the rest speak I, not the Lord: If any brother hath a wife that believeth not, and she be pleased to dwell with him, let him not put her ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:14 ( 9 ) For the unbelieving husband is ( h ) sanctified by the ( i ) wife, and the unbelieving wife is sanctified by the ( k ) husband: else were your c...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:15 ( 10 ) But if the unbelieving depart, let him depart. A brother or a sister is not under bondage in ( m ) such [cases]: ( 11 ) but God hath called us ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:17 ( 12 ) But as God hath distributed to every man, as the Lord hath ( n ) called every one, so let him walk. And so ordain I in all churches. ( 12 ) Ta...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:18 ( 13 ) Is any man called being circumcised? let him not ( o ) become uncircumcised. Is any called in uncircumcision? let him not be circumcised. ( 13...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:21 Art thou called [being] a servant? ( p ) care not for it: but if thou mayest be made free, use [it] rather. ( p ) As though this calling were too unw...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:22 For he that is called in the ( q ) Lord, [being] a servant, is the Lord's freeman: likewise also he that is called, [being] free, is Christ's servant....

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:23 ( 14 ) Ye are bought with a price; be not ye the servants of men. ( 14 ) He shows the reason of the unlikeness, because he that desired to be circumc...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:24 ( 15 ) Brethren, let every man, wherein he is called, therein abide with ( r ) God. ( 15 ) A repetition of the general doctrine. ( r ) So purely and...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:25 ( 16 ) Now concerning virgins I have no commandment of the Lord: yet I give my ( s ) judgment, as ( t ) one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord to be...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:26 I suppose therefore that ( u ) this is good for the ( x ) present distress, [I say], that [it is] good for a man so to be. ( u ) To remain a virgin. ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:28 But and if thou marry, thou hast not sinned; and if a virgin marry, she hath not sinned. Nevertheless such shall have trouble in the ( y ) flesh: but ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:29 But this I say, brethren, the time [is] ( a ) short: it remaineth, that both they that have wives be as though they had none; ( a ) For we are now in...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:30 And they that ( b ) weep, as though they wept not; and they that rejoice, as though they rejoiced not; and they that buy, as though they possessed not...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:31 And they that use this ( c ) world, as not abusing [it]: for the ( d ) fashion of this world passeth away. ( c ) Those things which God gives us here...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:33 But he that is married ( e ) careth for the things that are of the world, how he may please [his] wife. ( e ) Those that are married have their minds...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:34 There is difference [also] between a wife and a virgin. The unmarried woman careth for the things of the Lord, that she may be holy both in body and i...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:35 And this I speak for your own ( g ) profit; not that I may cast a snare upon you, but for that which is comely, and that ye may attend upon the Lord w...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:36 ( 17 ) But if any man think that he behaveth himself uncomely toward his virgin, if she pass the flower of [her] age, and need so require, let him do ...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:37 Nevertheless he that standeth stedfast in his ( i ) heart, having no ( k ) necessity, but hath power over his own will, and hath so decreed in his hea...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:38 So then he that giveth [her] in marriage doeth well; but he that giveth [her] not in marriage doeth ( l ) better. ( l ) Provides better for his child...

Geneva Bible: 1Co 7:39 ( 18 ) The wife is bound by the ( m ) law as long as her husband liveth; but if her husband be dead, she is at liberty to be married to whom she will;...

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Range Notes

TSK Synopsis: 1Co 7:1-40 - --1 He treats of marriage;4 shewing it to be a remedy against fornication,10 and that the bond thereof ought not lightly to be dissolved.20 Every man mu...

Maclaren: 1Co 7:19 - --Forms Versus Character Circumcision is nothing, and uncircumcision is nothing, but the keeping of the commandments of God.'--1 Cor. 7:19. For in Jesu...

Maclaren: 1Co 7:22 - --Slaves And Free He that is called in the Lord, being a servant, is the Lord's free man: likewise also he that is called, being free, is Christ's serv...

Maclaren: 1Co 7:24 - --The Christian Life Brethren, let every man, wherein he is called, therein abide with God.'--1 Cor. 7:24. You find that three times within the compass...

MHCC: 1Co 7:1-9 - --The apostle tells the Corinthians that it was good, in that juncture of time, for Christians to keep themselves single. Yet he says that marriage, and...

MHCC: 1Co 7:10-16 - --Man and wife must not separate for any other cause than what Christ allows. Divorce, at that time, was very common among both Jews and Gentiles, on ve...

MHCC: 1Co 7:17-24 - --The rules of Christianity reach every condition; and in every state a man may live so as to be a credit to it. It is the duty of every Christian to be...

MHCC: 1Co 7:25-35 - --Considering the distress of those times, the unmarried state was best. Notwithstanding, the apostle does not condemn marriage. How opposite are those ...

MHCC: 1Co 7:36-40 - --The apostle is thought to give advice here about the disposal of children in marriage. In this view, the general meaning is plain. Children should see...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:1-9 - -- The apostle comes now, as a faithful and skilful casuist, to answer some cases of conscience which the Corinthians had proposed to him. Those were ...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:10-16 - -- In this paragraph the apostle gives them direction in a case which must be very frequent in that age of the world, especially among the Jewish conve...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:17-24 - -- Here the apostle takes occasion to advise them to continue in the state and condition in which Christianity found them, and in which they became con...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:25-35 - -- The apostle here resumes his discourse, and gives directions to virgins how to act, concerning which we may take notice, I. Of the manner wherein he...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:36-38 - -- In this passage the apostle is commonly supposed to give advice about the disposal of children in marriage, upon the principle of his former determi...

Matthew Henry: 1Co 7:39-40 - -- The whole is here closed up with advice to widows: As long as the husband liveth the wife is bound by the law, confined to one husband, and bound ...

Barclay: 1Co 7:3-7 - --This passage arises from a suggestion from Corinth that if married people are to be really Christian they must abstain from all intercourse with each ...

Barclay: 1Co 7:8-16 - --This passage deals with three different sets of people. (i) It deals with those who are unmarried or who are widows. In the circumstances of an age w...

Barclay: 1Co 7:17-24 - --Paul lays down one of the first rules of Christianity, "Be a Christian where you are." It must often have happened that when a man became a Christia...

Barclay: 1Co 7:25 - --1Co 7:25-38, while they form a paragraph, really fall into two parts, which it is simpler to examine separately. 1Co 7:25and 1Co 7:36-38deal with ...

Barclay: 1Co 7:26-35 - --It is in many ways a pity that Paul did not begin the chapter with this section because it has the heart of his whole position in it. All through thi...

Barclay: 1Co 7:36-38 - -- See Comments for 1 Cor 7:25

Barclay: 1Co 7:39-40 - --Again Paul takes up his consistent point of view. Marriage is a relationship which can be broken only by death. A second marriage is perfectly allow...

Constable: 1Co 7:1--16:13 - --III. Questions asked of Paul 7:1--16:12 The remainder of the body of this epistle deals with questions the Corin...

Constable: 1Co 7:1-40 - --A. Marriage and related matters ch. 7 The first subject with which he dealt was marriage. He began with ...

Constable: 1Co 7:1-16 - --1. Advice to the married or formerly married 7:1-16 Paul proceeded to give guidelines to the mar...

Constable: 1Co 7:1-7 - --The importance of sexual relations in marriage 7:1-7 Paul advised married people not to abstain from normal sexual relations. 7:1 Again Paul began wha...

Constable: 1Co 7:8-9 - --The legitimate option of singleness 7:8-9 Paul moved from advice to the married regarding sexual abstinence to advice to the unmarried. He advised thi...

Constable: 1Co 7:10-11 - --No divorce for Christians whose mates are believers 7:10-11 Again Paul advised remaining as they were, but he also allowed an exception. "While Paul d...

Constable: 1Co 7:12-16 - --No divorce for Christians whose mates are unbelievers 7:12-16 In this situation, too, Paul granted an exception, but the exceptional is not the ideal....

Constable: 1Co 7:17-24 - --2. The basic principle 7:17-24 At this point Paul moved back from specific situations to basic principles his readers needed to keep in mind when thin...

Constable: 1Co 7:25-40 - --3. Advice concerning virgins 7:25-40 The second occurrence of the phrase peri de ("now concernin...

Constable: 1Co 7:25-28 - --The advantage of the single state 7:25-28 In view of the verses in this section it seems that the question the Corinthians had asked Paul was whether ...

Constable: 1Co 7:29-35 - --Reasons for remaining single 7:29-35 Paul next called his readers to take a different view of their relationship to the world since they lived in dist...

Constable: 1Co 7:36-40 - --The legitimacy of marriage 7:36-40 This section concludes Paul's entire teaching on marriage in this chapter. However it contains problems related to ...

College: 1Co 7:1-40 - --1 CORINTHIANS 7 IV. SEXUALITY, CELIBACY, AND MARRIAGE (7:1-40) It is not easy to discover the Corinthian situation and issues that lie behind Paul'...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:6 - --But this I say by way of concession, not of commandment . [That his readers may understand his counsel, Paul discusses the marriage state, and shows t...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:7 - --Yet I would that all men were even as I myself. Howbeit each man hath his own gift from God, one after this manner, and another after that .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:8 - --But I say to the unmarried and to widows, It is good for them if they abide even as I .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:9 - --But if they have not continency, let them marry: for it is better to marry than to burn . [In contrast with the enforced indulgence of matrimony, Paul...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:10 - --But unto the married I give charge, yea not I, but the Lord [by his own lips -- Mat 5:31-32 ; Mat 19:3-12 ; Mar 10:12], That the wife depart not from ...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:11 - --(but should she depart, let her remain unmarried, or else be reconciled to her husband); and that the husband leave not his wife .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:12 - --But to the rest [the further application of the law or principle] say I [as an inspired apostle], not the Lord [with his own lips]: If any brother hat...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:13 - --And the woman that hath an unbelieving husband, and he is content to dwell with her, let her not leave her husband .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:14 - --For the unbelieving husband is sanctified in the wife [The word "sanctified" is here used in the Jewish sense of being not unclean, and therefore not ...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:15 - --Yet if the unbelieving departeth, let him depart: the brother or the sister is not under bondage in such cases: but God hath called us in peace .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:16 - --For how knowest thou, O wife, whether thou shalt save thy husband? or how knowest thou, O husband, whether thou shalt save thy wife?

McGarvey: 1Co 7:17 - --Only, as the Lord hath distributed to each man, as God hath called each, so let him walk. And so ordain I in all the churches . [Paul first answers ge...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:18 - --Was any man called [converted] being circumcised? let him not become uncircumcised . [1 Macc. 1:15.] Hath any been called in uncircumcision? let him n...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:19 - --Circumcision is nothing, and uncircumcision is nothing; but the keeping of the commandments of God . [is, in this connection, everything.]

McGarvey: 1Co 7:20 - --Let each man abide in that calling [trade or social condition] wherein he was called .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:21 - --Wast thou called being a bondservant? care not for it: nay, even if ["nay, even if" should read "but if"] thou canst become free, use it [i. e., freed...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:22 - --For he that was called in the Lord being a bondservant, is the Lord's freedman: likewise he that was called being free, is Christ's bondservant .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:23 - --Ye were bought with a price; become not bondservants of men .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:24 - --Brethren, let each man, wherein he was called, therein abide with God . [i. e., abide with God in the calling wherein he was called. Taking up the rul...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:25 - --Now concerning virgins I have no commandment of the Lord: but I give my judgment, as one that hath obtained mercy of the Lord to be trustworthy .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:26 - --I think therefore that this is good by reason of the distress that is upon us, namely, that it is good for a man to be as he is .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:27 - --Art thou bound unto a wife? seek not to be loosed. Art thou loosed from a wife? seek not a wife .

McGarvey: 1Co 7:28 - --But shouldest thou marry, thou hast not sinned; and if a virgin marry, she hath not sinned. Yet such shall have tribulation in the flesh: and I would ...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:29 - --But this I say, brethren, the time is shortened, that henceforth both those that have wives may be as though they had none ;

McGarvey: 1Co 7:30 - --and those that weep, as though they wept not; and those that rejoice, as though they rejoiced not; and those that buy, as though they possessed not ;

McGarvey: 1Co 7:31 - --and those that use the world, as not using it to the full: for the fashion of this world passeth away . [At the time of Paul's writing, a great social...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:32 - --But I would have you to be free from cares. He that is unmarried is careful for the things of the Lord, how he may please the Lord:

McGarvey: 1Co 7:33 - --but he that is married is careful for the things of the world, how he may please his wife ,

McGarvey: 1Co 7:34 - --and is divided. So also the woman that is unmarried and the virgin is careful for the things of the Lord, that she may be holy both in body and in spi...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:35 - --And this I say for your own profit; not that I may cast a snare upon you, but for that which is seemly, and that ye may attend upon the Lord without d...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:36 - --But if any man thinketh that he behaveth himself unseemly toward his virgin daughter, if she be past the flower of her age, and if need so requireth, ...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:37 - --But he that standeth stedfast in his heart, having no necessity, but hath power as touching his own will, and hath determined this in his own heart, t...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:38 - --So then both he that giveth his own virgin daughter in marriage doeth well; and he that giveth her not in marriage shall do better . [Marriages in the...

McGarvey: 1Co 7:39 - --A wife is bound for so long time as her husband liveth; but if the husband be dead, she is free to be married to whom she will; only in the Lord . [i....

McGarvey: 1Co 7:40 - --But she is happier if she abide as she is, after my judgment: and I think that I also have the spirit of God .

Lapide: 1Co 7:1-40 - --CHAPTER 7 SYNOPSIS OF THE CHAPTER In this chapter he answers five questions of the Corinthians about the laws of matrimony, and about the counsel of...

expand all
Commentary -- Other

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:10 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:11 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:12 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:13 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:14 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:15 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:16 1 CORINTHIANS 7:10-16 —Does Paul contradict what Jesus said about divorce? PROBLEM: This passage from 1 Corinthians talks about a Christian who...

Critics Ask: 1Co 7:40 1 CORINTHIANS 7:12 (cf. 7:40 )—How can Paul’s words be inspired if he says he is merely giving his own opinion? PROBLEM: In two places in 1 C...

Evidence: 1Co 7:40 For how to speak with someone who doesn’t believe in the afterlife, see Psa 49:15 footnote.

expand all
Introduction / Outline

Robertson: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) First Corinthians From Ephesus a.d. 54 Or 55 By Way of Introduction It would be a hard-boiled critic today who would dare deny the genuineness o...

JFB: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) The AUTHENTICITY of this Epistle is attested by CLEMENT OF ROME [First Epistle to the Corinthians, 47], POLYCARP [Epistle to the Philippians, 11], and...

JFB: 1 Corinthians (Outline) THE INSCRIPTION; THANKSGIVING FOR THE SPIRITUAL STATE OF THE CORINTHIAN CHURCH; REPROOF OF PARTY DIVISIONS: HIS OWN METHOD OF PREACHING ONLY CHRIST. ...

TSK: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) Overview 1Co 7:1, He treats of marriage; 1Co 7:4, shewing it to be a remedy against fornication, 1Co 7:10. and that the bond thereof ought not lig...

Poole: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) CORINTHIANS CHAPTER 7

MHCC: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) The Corinthian church contained some Jews, but more Gentiles, and the apostle had to contend with the superstition of the one, and the sinful conduct ...

MHCC: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) (1Co 7:1-9) The apostle answers several questions about marriage. (1Co 7:10-16) Married Christians should not seek to part from their unbelieving con...

Matthew Henry: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) An Exposition, with Practical Observations, of The First Epistle of St. Paul to the Corinthians Corinth was a principal city of Greece, in that partic...

Matthew Henry: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) In this chapter the apostle answers some cases proposed to him by the Corinthians about marriage. He, I. Shows them that marriage was appointed as...

Barclay: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) A GENERAL INTRODUCTION TO THE LETTERS OF PAUL The Letters Of Paul There is no more interesting body of documents in the New Testament than the letter...

Barclay: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) Complete Asceticism (1Co_7:1-2) The Partnership Of Marriage (1Co_7:3-7) The Bond That Must Not Be Broken (1Co_7:8-16) Serving God Where God Has Se...

Constable: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) Introduction Historical Background Corinth had a long history stretching back into the...

Constable: 1 Corinthians (Outline) Outline I. Introduction 1:1-9 A. Salutation 1:1-3 B. Thanksgiving 1:4-9 ...

Constable: 1 Corinthians 1 Corinthians Bibliography Adams, Jay. Marriage, Divorce and Remarriage in the Bible. Phillipsburg, N.J.: Presb...

Haydock: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) THE FIRST EPISTLE OF ST. PAUL, THE APOSTLE, TO THE CORINTHIANS. INTRODUCTION. Corinth was the capital of Achaia, a very rich and populous city...

Gill: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO 1 CORINTHIANS This was not the first epistle that was written by the apostle to the Corinthians, for we read in this of his having ...

Gill: 1 Corinthians 7 (Chapter Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO 1 CORINTHIANS 7 In this, chapter, various cases concerning marriage being proposed to the apostle, are answered by him; and he disc...

College: 1 Corinthians (Book Introduction) FOREWORD Since the past few decades have seen an explosion in the number of books, articles, and commentaries on First Corinthians, a brief word to t...

College: 1 Corinthians (Outline) OUTLINE I. INTRODUCTION - 1:1-9 A. Salutation - 1:1-3 B. Thanksgiving - 1:4-9 II. DISUNITY AND COMMUNITY FRAGMENTATION - 1:10-4:21 A. ...

Advanced Commentary (Dictionaries, Hymns, Arts, Sermon Illustration, Question and Answers, etc)


TIP #01: Welcome to the NET Bible Web Interface and Study System!! [ALL]
created in 2.14 seconds
powered by
bible.org - YLSA